The Merivale banks

By Mary Jane Holmes

The Project Gutenberg eBook of The Merivale banks
    
This ebook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and
most other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no restrictions
whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it under the terms
of the Project Gutenberg License included with this ebook or online
at www.gutenberg.org. If you are not located in the United States,
you will have to check the laws of the country where you are located
before using this eBook.

Title: The Merivale banks

Author: Mary Jane Holmes

Release date: December 18, 2024 [eBook #74929]

Language: English

Original publication: New York: G. W. Dillingham company

Credits: Richard Tonsing and the Online Distributed Proofreading Team at https://www.pgdp.net (This book was produced from images made available by the HathiTrust Digital Library.)


*** START OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK THE MERIVALE BANKS ***


[Illustration:

  “He has four thousand more we can have.”

  Frontispiece—Page 77.
]




                           The Merivale Banks


                                   BY

                             MARY J. HOLMES

[Illustration: [Logo]]

                        G. W. DILLINGHAM COMPANY

                        PUBLISHERS      NEW YORK




                         COPYRIGHT, 1900, 1903.

                        BY MRS. MARY J. HOLMES.

                        [_All rights reserved._]

          _The Merivale Banks._      _Issued September, 1903._


[Illustration: [Logo]]




                                CONTENTS


                 CHAPTER                           PAGE
                      I. The Banks                    5
                     II. Herbert and Louie           16
                    III. Invitations for the Party   34
                     IV. The Morning of the Party    42
                      V. The Run                     50
                     VI. Louie Comes to the Rescue   71
                    VII. The Judge                   83
                   VIII. Louie and Fred              91
                     IX. The Party                  104
                      X. On the Grey Piazza         121
                     XI. Keeping the Secret         132
                    XII. Mr. Grey                   155
                   XIII. The Crash                  177
                    XIV. Louie’s Courage            199
                     XV. The Session                215
                    XVI. Severing the Tie           223
                   XVII. The Shadow of Death        233
                  XVIII. Mr. Grey’s Story           248
                    XIX. The End and After          256
                     XX. On the Other Side          269
                    XXI. At the Savoy               281
                   XXII. In Paris                   290
                  XXIII. Louie and Miss Percy       299
                   XXIV. At Home                    309




                           The Merivale Banks




                               CHAPTER I
                               THE BANKS


There were two of them: the First National, familiarly known as the
White Bank, and a private bank, known as the Grey Bank, and they stood
side by side in the same imposing block, with marble front and massive
doors of oak, and broad granite steps. High up in the cornice was an
inscription telling that the building had been erected in 1875 by Robert
White, Esq. He would like to have had Judge Robert White, instead of
Robert White, Esq., so proud was he of the title held for a year only,
and for which he was indebted to the resignation of an intimate friend
and the influence of money. But his wife dissuaded him from it, but
could not keep off the “Esq.” He was both a judge and a ‘squire, he
said, having held the office of Justice of the Peace for two terms, and
being called ‘squire before he became a judge, and one of the titles
should go down to posterity.

He was a weak man, and a proud man; weak in judgment and common sense,
and very proud of his birth as son of a General and grandson of a
Governor, with a line of ancestry dating back nearly to the flood. He
was proud, too, of his money, and his house, the finest in Merivale, and
his handsome grounds, and of his marble block, the third floor of which
was occupied by a Masonic lodge, the second by law offices and
club-rooms, and the first by the two banks. Of one of them—the
National—he was president, and that fact added to his high opinion of
himself as the first man in Merivale.

“Yes, my boy—the first man in Merivale, and don’t you forget it, or that
you are my son—the grandson of a General and the great grandson of a
Governor, with all sorts of high blood behind them,” he said to his only
son and heir, Herbert. “Pick the best there is in society or none,” was
his injunction, and by the best he meant those with the most money,
without reference to character or morals.

In some respects Herbert was a son worthy of his father, and when a lad,
had built a wall of reserve between himself and the boys whom he thought
second-class in the Merivale High School.

With the girls, however, it was different, and when Louie Grey’s bright
brown eyes looked fearlessly at him, and when Louie called him a
blockhead because he failed to work out a simple problem in algebra upon
the blackboard, and then, to make amends, whispered to him the answer to
a question in history over which he was hopelessly floundering, he
forgot the White blood of which his father had taught him to be so
proud—forgot his pedigree, and went over the wall to meet the young girl
with the brown eyes and hair, who had no pedigree, so far as he knew,
and who certainly had no money.

The Greys were new-comers in Merivale, and no one knew anything about
them, except that they had come from Denver and seemed to be very poor.
But both Mr. Grey and his wife were so affable and had about them an air
of so much good breeding and refinement that it won them friends at
once, and a place in the best society of the town—always excepting, of
course, Judge White, who held aloof from strangers until he knew the
length of their purse, or their pedigree, both of which he considered
indispensable if he were to take them up. The Greys had neither, he was
sure, for they rented one of his cheap cottages in what was known as
White Row; and Louie, when questioned by Herbert as to her pedigree,
said at first that she didn’t think they had one; or if they had, they
didn’t call it by that name; and when he explained to her what he meant,
citing his grandfather and great-grandfather as examples of his meaning,
she answered at once:

“Oh, yes, I have, or did have, a grandfather and great-grandfather, like
you—captains of ships, which sailed from Nantucket out upon the seas,
and were called either smugglers or pirates, I don’t know which. I’ll
ask father.”

She did ask him, and, with his fondness for humor and jokes, Mr. Grey
replied, “Tell him both, by all means, and that you have quite as
blooded a pedigree as he can boast.”

How much of this Herbert believed, it were difficult to tell. Smugglers
and pirates had an ugly sound, and for a time he kept aloof from the
girl whose ancestry was so questionable; then her sunny face and saucy
eyes prevailed over prejudice, and they became inseparable. She was no
end of fun, he said, and followed fearlessly where he led her. She was
not afraid of snakes, nor bugs, nor beetles, nor worms, for he had tried
them all upon her, and she had neither screeched nor flinched, but paid
him in his own coin, and made him more afraid of her than she was of
him. She could climb a fence or a tree as fast as he could, and faster,
too, as he knew by experience; for once, when he started up an elm in
which there was a robin’s nest, with four blue eggs in it, she went
after him like a little cat, and, seizing him by the coat collar, nearly
threw him to the ground and made him give up the nest, to which the
father and mother robins, who had been uttering cries of distress,
returned in peace, finding their eggs unmolested.

“I’ll never speak to you again,” she said to him when she had him safe
on the ground, with her hand still holding to his collar, while he made
frantic efforts to get away from her.

She didn’t speak to him for two days; but when, on the third, she found
an orange in her desk, with a few words scrawled on a piece of paper,
“Haven’t you been mean long enough, and ain’t you never going to give
in?” she gave in, and allowed him to walk home with her after school,
past his own handsome house, with its grounds sloping down to the river,
and on to the narrow back street where she lived in one of his father’s
tenement houses. It was not a very attractive house, and Herbert always
shuddered when he saw it and thought that Louie lived there. There were
six cottages in a row, all of the same size and architecture, except one
at the north end, where the only shade tree on the street was growing.
This was a little larger and had in front a double bay window, which
gave it an air of superiority over its humbler neighbors. When Mr. Grey
came to Merivale houses were scarce and rents high. In White Row, Bay
Cottage, as it was called on account of its window, chanced to be
vacant, and after searching in vain for a house in a more desirable
neighborhood, Mr. Grey took it and became one of the White Row tenants.

“My tenants,” Judge White was wont to say, with a strong emphasis on the
_my_, as if they belonged to him, body and soul, while to the tenants,
when he came in contact with them, he had an air as if they were as far
beneath him in the social scale as it was possible for them to be. “A
wretched lot,” he said, “who never seem to think it as incumbent upon
them to pay their rent as their grocer’s bill; act as if I or’to give it
to ’em. In fact, old Nancy Sharp once told me I or’to, because I was
rich and she poor.”

To this, however, Mr. Grey was an exception. His rent was always ready,
and he paid it with a manner which made his landlord feel that if there
were any superiority, it was not on his side.

On the afternoon when Herbert accompanied Louie home, carrying her books
and her umbrella, for the day had been showery, he found his father in
the cottage, receiving his money for the quarter’s rent, and looking
puzzled and disconcerted.

“I’ll think about it, and let you know; but I warn you now that I don’t
believe it will work. It takes experience and a pile of money. No, sir;
I don’t believe it will work,” he said, as he placed his rent in a
pocketbook bulging with bills, for this was the day when he went the
rounds among his tenants himself, instead of sending an agent.

What wouldn’t work, he didn’t explain to Herbert, whom he took away with
him, questioning him closely as to the frequency of his visits to the
Greys, and telling him to remember who he was and what his ancestry.

At dinner that night he was more communicative, and said to his wife,
“What do you suppose Tom Grey wants to do?”

Mrs. White could not guess, and her husband continued: “In the first
place, he has given notice that he will quit my tenement for a larger
house at the end of the next quarter; and I don’t like it. No, sir! I
don’t like it. I never fancied the fellow. Puts on the fine gentleman
too much for a chap as poor as I suppose he is. But he’s a good
tenant—one of the very best; pays up to the hour, and never asks for
repairs, papering nor nothing; while the rest of ’em in White Row hound
me, spring and fall, for paper or paint, but mostly paper, which I
believe they tear off as fast as it is put on. Old Nancy Sharp had the
impudence to ask me for screens to keep the flies out! Lord Harry!
they’ll want gas or electric lights next! But what beats me is Tom
Grey’s setting up so high. Says he has lately come into possession of
quite a little money. He has been West for some weeks, and has just got
home, and is going to take a better house, and wants to rent the vacant
rooms next to the Bank; and for what, do you suppose? You’d never
guess.”

Mrs. White didn’t try, and he went on: “For a bank! A private bank! To
be known as Grey’s Bank! Think of it—a one-horse bank, side by side with
mine! It’s a piece of impertinence, and I would have refused outright,
if the place had not been vacant so long, and I hadn’t had such pesky
work with the last man, who went off leaving me in the lurch to the tune
of three hundred dollars.”

Here the judge stopped to take breath, while his wife asked, “Where did
he get the money to start a bank with?”

“The Lord only knows,” her husband replied. “Was poor as Job’s turkey
when he came here. Why, didn’t his wife do some sewing for you?”

Mrs. White nodded, and the judge went on: “And now he has money for a
bank! Gambled for it, maybe, when he was gone. He is just the quiet, sly
sort of a fellow to do that thing.”

“Mr. Grey never gambled, I know he didn’t,” Herbert spoke up. “He’s a
gentleman, if he is poor, and he has been through college. Louie told me
so, and you have only been to common schools!”

Herbert was quite eloquent in his defense of Mr. Grey, but his father
frowned him down by saying, “You seem to be posted in Mr. Grey’s
affairs—too much so—and I want you to keep away from there—carrying home
that girl’s books and umbrella! Remember who you are.”

Herbert’s answer was to leave the room and slam the door behind him,
while his father continued: “That boy is too thick with the Grey girl,
and if her father gets into a bank, it will be worse yet. I think I’ll
not let him have it.”

“But,” his wife rejoined, “if you do not rent to him some one else will,
and your rooms will stay vacant. Don’t be foolish. It isn’t likely he
can run more than a year.”

“No, nor half that, before he bursts up. Who is going to deposit with
him, when there is the First National? Nobody; but I’ll have the lease
drawn for a year, and he’ll have to pay whether or no, half down anyway!
Said he had had some experience in a bank, and liked it. Well, let him
try. I’ll give him six months before he closes up.”

As a result of this conversation, the rooms next to the National Bank
were leased for a year to Mr. Grey, who also hired and moved into a more
fashionable part of the town than White’s Row, where he had at first
lived. There was some speculation as to where he got the money so
suddenly for so great an expenditure when he was not in any business.
But on this point he was non-committal, as he was on most subjects. He
never talked much, but his pleasant, genial manners had made him
popular, and people were glad to see him prosper, and glad to have a
second bank in town. They needed it, they said, for Bob White was
getting so bigheaded and overbearing, that it was well to take him down
a bit, and they hoped Tom Grey would succeed.

He had no fear of it himself, and entered heart and soul into the
fitting up of the new bank, and never asked patronage from any one. He
knew he should get it, and he did. Slowly at first, as people were a
little timid, and those who had money in the National did not care to
draw it out and place it elsewhere. As time went on, however, and there
was no sign of the blow-up Judge White had predicted, confidence
increased. There were more deposits and larger, and by the end of the
year the Grey Bank was doing a good business—small, of course, compared
with the White Bank, but good, and constantly increasing.

“Can’t go on long. Mark my words. Can’t go on,” Judge White would say,
shaking his head warningly to some customer who, he knew, was taking a
part of his funds from his bank to place it with his rival. “There goes
Widow Brown now with five dollars, I dare say, and old maid Smith with
ten, maybe. What is that to what we have? A drop in the bucket. You’ll
see, you will, where he’ll land with his washerwomen’s and servant
girls’ deposits.”

This was Judge White’s opinion of the Grey Bank, and when the first
lease expired, he would have liked some good reason for refusing to
renew it. But there was none. The rent was paid as regularly as it had
been in the little tenement in White’s Row. There was no other applicant
for the premises, and he contented himself with raising the rent a
hundred dollars, to which Mr. Grey made no demur. He was satisfied and
happy, and an ideal banker, greeting every one with a pleasant smile and
word, and making loans in small amounts where the risk was so great that
the White Bank would never have taken it. To all human appearance he was
on the top wave of prosperity and enjoyed it to the full.

He was building a new house now, on a lot a little out of the town, and
on the same street with Judge White. It was to be first-class in every
respect, and people watched it as it progressed, and were glad for Tom
Grey. He was a good fellow every way, and a good citizen, giving freely
of his means and working for the public good, and they rejoiced in his
good fortune, and made him one of the Village Board and School Board,
and would have made him a vestryman if he had not declined that office,
saying he was not worthy of it. That Judge White should be a little
jealous of him was natural, but he was too proud to own it, and only
shook his head ominously whenever he was mentioned.

“Let him run,” he would say to himself. “Yes, let him run. He will soon
reach the end of his rope, if my surmises are correct. Then we’ll hear
howling from those washerwomen who are putting their weeks’ earnings in
his bank. Yes, let him run!”




                               CHAPTER II
                           HERBERT AND LOUIE


Four years passed, and the Grey Bank had not come to the end of its
rope. Many besides Widow Brown and old maid Smith, and washerwomen
generally, deposited in it, and Mr. Grey seemed to be increasing in
wealth and prosperity.

The new house had long been finished and occupied, and was a model of
simple elegance, outside and in. The Greys had good taste, and whatever
they touched fell into the right place, and harmonized with whatever was
nearest to it. Louie’s artistic eye detected an incongruity at once, and
as she directed the most of her surroundings, people said of the grounds
and the house that they were like pictures in which the outline and
coloring were perfect, while Louie was the fairest picture of all.

She was nearly seventeen, with a face of rare beauty, especially her
eyes, which Herbert White thought the handsomest he had ever seen. She
did not climb fences or trees with him now. She was getting too old for
that, but she went rowing with him on the river, after the white lilies,
and took long rambles in the woods, searching for the early spring
flowers, and later on for ferns and the red sumach berries. Sometimes
she drove with him in the fancy turn-out which his father had given him
on his birthday. But this did not occur often, for such drives were
highly disapproved by Judge White, who read his son many a lecture on
his bad taste in admiring a girl in Louie’s low estate.

“Good thunder, father,” Herbert said to him one morning when the lecture
had been longer than usual, “isn’t Louie Grey as good as I am, if her
father hasn’t quite as much money as you? He is a banker and a
gentleman, and folks like him, and put him in office. Why, he is
President of the village now, and—and—I never told you—but that time Mr.
Smith, our church warden, died and we had to have a new one, they
offered it to Mr. Grey, who refused it, just as he refused being
vestryman, saying he was not good enough. So they took you, because you
had a lot of money, I know; I heard about it. They said you were proud
and overbearing, but on the whole a good man, and if Mr. Grey wouldn’t
take it, there was no one else, so they elected you. I wanted to tell
you then, but you seemed so pleased I didn’t.”

The judge was very pale by the time Herbert finished this statement, and
for a church warden very angry, too. He didn’t swear, but he wanted to,
and did say some things not very complimentary to the church generally
and Mr. Grey in particular. He was proud of being church warden, and
that Tom Grey should have been mentioned in preference to himself was
galling to his pride, and increased his dislike for the man and
everything pertaining to him, while Herbert was again told in strong
terms to let the Grey girl alone.

“Nobody knows what her father was before he came here, or how he lived
either. No business till he opened a bank, I’ve heard it hinted—but I
ain’t going to slander anybody; this I’ll say, though, I don’t believe
Tom Grey’s record is the cleanest that ever was. Needn’t tell me that
one-horse bank of his can pay for the big swath he is cutting. Stands to
reason he has some other way of getting money, and always has had. Time
will tell. Warden of the church! I’d laugh. He had sense enough to
decline, and I’ll resign, too, by the Lord Harry! Took me because I had
money and there was nobody else! Yes, sir! I’ll resign, and let ’em have
Tom Grey if they want him.”

The judge was very red in the face by the time he had finished this
tirade, to which Herbert had listened impatiently. He had seen a plaid
skirt and red waist down the street, and was anxious to get away; but
his father was not yet through, and, after mopping his face and taking
breath, he went on:

“The girl is all right in her place, but my son should look higher, and
remember the kind of family he belongs to. Do you think your cousin,
Fred Lansing, would go scampering round the country with Tom Grey’s
girl? No, sir! There’s a young man who knows how to demean himself, and
it would be well for you to imitate him. He is coming here, too. I’ve
just got a letter from his mother, my sister and your aunt, Mrs. George
Lansing. They will visit us this summer and bring that young lady who
lives with them. There’s a chance for you. What is her name?
Blanche—Blanche—?”

“Blanche Percy—old enough to be my grandmother,” Herbert answered
contemptuously, as he turned on his heel and walked away, declaring he
didn’t care for a hundred Blanche Percys and Fred Lansings. “I have had
him dinged into my ears as a model to imitate ever since I can
remember,” he said to himself as he went rapidly down the street in the
direction of the plaid dress and red jacket.

And yet in his heart he had a great admiration for his cousin Fred, who
was six years his senior, and every way his equal in money and position
and pedigree, if indeed he was not his superior. His mother was a White,
with all the prestige of the White lineage, while on the Lansing side
was a long line of judges and governors and bishops, and two generals,
both in the Confederate army. One of them was Fred’s father, who was a
Virginian, and had been killed at Gettysburg. Judge White was very proud
of his connection with the Lansings and very proud of his nephew Fred,
who had been to college, and travelled round the world, and carried
himself as if he had in his veins the blood of a hundred kings. He had
not been often in Merivale, and it was two or three years since Herbert
last saw him, in Washington, where his mother had lived for some time,
and where her house was a resort for the best society in that
cosmopolitan city. But he was coming now, and Herbert felt a thrill of
pride as he thought of showing off his distinguished relatives to the
plain people of Merivale.

“I wonder what he will think of Louie, and what she will think of him,
and what father meant about Mr. Grey’s record,” he said to himself, as
he turned a corner and met the girl face to face.

“Hallo,” he said, and she replied, “Hallo,” as if they were talking
through a telephone; and then, unmindful of his father’s orders that he
should let the Grey girl alone, Herbert continued: “Come on down to the
river. I have a lot to tell you.”

It did not take them long to reach the river, and the boat which Herbert
had named for Louie was soon floating out upon the water, with the two
young people in it.

“Well, what is the lot you have to tell me?” Louie asked, removing her
hat with one hand, and letting the other hang over the side of the boat
in the river.

Once or twice Herbert had heard insinuations from his father and a few
others with regard to Mr. Grey’s career before he came to Merivale, and
of the possible way in which he was running his bank and having so much
money to spend, and had always been very angry.

“I’ll ask Louie some time,” he had thought, but had never brought
himself to do it until now, when his father’s hints were fresh in his
mind. It was rather an awkward thing to do, and he hesitated a moment
before he began:

“What did your father do before he came to Merivale?”

It was a strange question, and Louie looked her surprise as she replied,
“Do you mean, how did he get his living?”

“Why, yes, I guess that is what I mean. Was he a banker, or merchant, or
what?”

Louie’s brown eyes looked steadily at him, and her face flushed as she
replied very frankly:

“I hardly know what he did; there were so many things, and he did not
stay long in any. Got tired and tried another. He was in a bank for a
while, and in a store and insurance office, and I don’t know what else;
a rolling stone, mother used to call him, but he managed at times to
make a lot of money, which he spent very freely, and then didn’t have
much till he made some more. He is doing a great deal better now. Why do
you ask me? Have you any particular reason?”

Louie’s eyes were very bright, and Herbert felt his own droop beneath
them. He had not realized all his question might lead to, and was
wondering how to answer her, when she again said to him:

“What is it? Tell me!”

“Oh, nothing much,” he began. “There are a heap of liars in the
world—jealous pates—who hint that your father is—a—or was—a—”

Here he came to a dead stop, for Louie’s eyes were getting dangerous.

“Is—er—was—er—what? Speak out, or I’ll get up and go straight home.”

“I’d like to see you do it,” Herbert answered laughingly. “Don’t bounce
about so. You’ll upset the boat, and I can’t swim.”

“I can,” she said, contemptuously; “and what is it? What do the liars
say of father? That he is a thief, or murderer, or gambler, or what?”

“Why, no—or, yes—er—you’ve hit it partly,” Herbert stammered, but got no
farther, for Louie sprang to her feet with a movement as if she were
going to jump overboard, and did nearly upset the boat.

“Sit down, Louie. Sit down. Don’t be so peppery, and I’ll tell you. Some
folks do say that he gambled before he came here, and speculates now.”

“It’s false!” Louie exclaimed. “It’s false!” and she struck her hand in
the river with such force that great splashes of water were thrown into
the boat.

“Of course it’s a lie, I know that,” Herbert said, trying to quiet her.
“I don’t know why I told you, only I wanted to contradict it.”

“You may. You can. He never gambled, and as to speculating, lots do that
all the time in New York and Chicago and everywhere. You would do it if
you could make money by it. But I don’t believe father does. I know he
never gambled; that’s different,” Louie answered vehemently; then,
suddenly, as if some wave of memory had swept over her, there came a
hard look into her eyes, and drops of sweat stood around her lips, which
were very white, as was the rest of her face.

Herbert thought she was going to cry, but she only said very low:

“Let’s go home.”

“No, no—not yet. It is so nice out here,” Herbert replied. “There is
more I want to tell you.”

“If it is about father, I do not wish to hear it,” Louie said.

“It isn’t,” Herbert replied. “It is about my cousin, Fred Lansing. You
have heard of him?”

Louie had heard of him, as a relation of whom Herbert was very proud,
but in her excitement she cared to hear nothing more. She wanted to go
home, she said; but Herbert pulled farther up the river toward a bed of
white lilies, and kept talking to her of Fred and his Aunt Esther, who
were coming, with a Miss Blanche Percy, to whom his Uncle Lansing had
been guardian, and who lived with his aunt. This Miss Percy, he said,
was born in Richmond, where his aunt lived before the war. She once had
a twin brother, he had heard, who killed himself, or was killed, or
something. They never talked about it. She was a great heiress, and his
father would like him to marry her.

At this point Louie began to show a little interest, and looked up
quickly, while he continued:

“But that’s absurd. She is as old as Fred, if not older. Boys don’t
marry their grandmothers, do they?”

“I should think not,” Louie replied, and her head went up a little more
squarely on her shoulders. “When are these fine folks coming?” she
asked.

“Before long, I guess, and then there’ll be some grand times in town,
you bet. I heard mother say once that if the Lansings ever came here
she’d give a party which would astonish the natives. She’d have a brass
band and a string band and a caterer and everything O. K., and have
people from Worcester and Springfield, and only the very first in town.”

“Then I shall not be invited,” Louie said, with a snap in her voice
corresponding to the snap in her eyes.

“Why not?” Herbert asked in surprise.

“Because you would not invite the daughter of a gambler to meet your
fine friends, and that is what you said my father was,” Louie answered.

“I said nothing of the sort,” Herbert responded hotly. “I told of some
hints I wanted to contradict. I am sorry I told you, and I know it isn’t
true.”

To this Louie made no reply, but there came into her eyes a second time
the same hard look which had been there once before as she talked of her
father. Ordinarily she would have been greatly interested in the party,
of which there were never many in Merivale, but she was too anxious to
get home and confront her father with what she had heard, to care much
for Fred Lansing, or Blanche Percy, or the party to which she probably
would not be bidden.

Herbert was now rowing back to the boathouse, and almost before the
landing was reached Louie sprang on shore, and, without a word, sped
away like a deer in the direction of her home.

Her mother was out, but she found her father in the little room he
called his den, where he spent a good deal of his leisure time smoking
and reading, and looking over papers and letters, of which he had a
great many.

Louie never hesitated when a thing was to be done, and, rushing in upon
him, she startled him with the question:

“Father, are you a gambler?”

If she had knocked him down, Mr. Grey could not have been more
surprised.

“A gambler!” he repeated, the pen with which he was writing dropping
from his hands and his face white as a corpse. “What do you mean? Who
has said this of me?”

“It does not matter. I have heard that it was hinted. I said it was a
lie, and it is. You are not a gambler. If I thought you were and that
the money you give us so freely was obtained that way, I’d—I’d—burn my
dresses! I’d smash the furniture! I believe I’d set fire to the house!”

She looked like a little fury, with her flashing eyes and flushed, eager
face, and Mr. Grey drew his chair back from her as if afraid she might
do him bodily harm.

Two or three times he tried to speak, but the words he wanted to say
were difficult to utter and his lips twitched nervously.

“Say, father,” she continued, “are you a gambler?”

He was glad she put the question that way, and answered her clearly and
distinctly:

“No, daughter, I am not.”

“I knew it, and I’m so glad,” and Louie’s arms were around his neck, and
she was smothering him with kisses, each of which seemed to burn the
spot it touched, as he tried to disengage himself from her, and asked
her to tell him what she had heard.

She told him all at last, and although it was not much, it was the first
breath of suspicion which had reached him in his prosperous career, and
it struck him harder than Louie ever dreamed.

“Don’t tell your mother,” he said. “It is not necessary to trouble her.”

“Of course not,” Louie answered, “but what are you going to do? Won’t
you arrest ’em? Sue ’em for slander, or something?”

Mr. Grey laughed and answered: “Sue whom? That boy, or his father, from
whom, I think, the whole story started, because he is jealous of my
success? No, Louie, that is not my nature, and it is the wiser plan to
pay no attention to a story which will die of itself if it is given
nothing to feed upon. I am not a gambler. Perhaps I speculate a little
now and then in a safe, legitimate way, but that is very common. And now
go.”

He was quite himself again, and, with a load lifted from her mind, Louie
went out to meet her mother, who had just come in.

She did not see Herbert again, to speak with him, that day or the next,
although he passed the house two or three times very slowly, and she
knew he was hoping to get a sight of her. The next day a new wheel came
to her, and, anxious to show it and try it, she started out for a spin,
going past the White house, at which she looked almost as anxiously as
Herbert had looked for her the day before, and with better success, for
she had scarcely turned from that street into the Boulevard when she
heard the whir of a wheel behind her, and Herbert came scorching to her
side, nearly running her down in his headlong haste.

“I say, Louie,” he began, “where have you kept yourself? It’s an age
since I saw you. I hope you are not mad at what I told you. I wish my
tongue had been cut out before I did it; and isn’t your wheel a dandy?
Don’t ride so fast. I want to see it. Are you mad?”

“No,” Louie answered curtly, stopping short. “I told father what you
said, and it isn’t true, and if you ever hint it again, I’ll have you
arrested, and your father, too. I know he is at the bottom of it,
because he is jealous of father, and I’ll never speak to you again if
you don’t contradict it every time you hear it. My father a gambler! Not
much!”

She had said what she had to say, and was ready to forgive and be
forgiven, and to talk of her wheel, which, she said, had cost
seventy-five or a hundred dollars, she didn’t know which.

“It was not bought with gambling money, either,” she continued with a
toss of her head. “Father gave a check on his bank.”

Herbert thought of some things he had heard with regard to the
management of the bank, but wisely forebore any comment. He was too glad
to have Louie back on any terms, and the two were soon bowling far out
into the country, Louie keeping a little in advance, but near enough to
Herbert to hear what he was telling her of the Lansings, who, he said,
were coming the next day on the two o’clock train from New York. The
party was a sure thing, for his father and mother had settled it that
morning at breakfast. They decided, too, that no one in Merivale should
be invited except those to whom his mother was indebted and those who
called upon Mrs. Lansing and Miss Percy. “So you be sure and call with
your mother,” he added.

Louie laughed, and said she shouldn’t trouble herself to call upon such
old people, nor would they expect it, but she would tell her mother.
Then she made a long, rapid sweep, and turned towards home, followed by
Herbert, who with all his scorching could scarcely keep up with her, for
she seemed to fly, and her wheel was proving worthy of its name, “The
Flyer,” stamped upon it in silver letters, with the date of its gift to
her.

“I don’t suppose I shall see you while your grand folks are here,” she
said as she dismounted at her gate.

“Oh, but you must see Fred,” Herbert replied, and the last thing she
heard from him as he went down the road was something about Fred, the
best fellow in the world.

The next day, when Louie heard the New York train, she took a book, and
seating herself upon the piazza, waited for the White carriage. She had
seen it go by with Herbert in it, and in the course of half an hour it
came back, with Herbert and a young man on the front seat, and two
ladies behind them, presumably Mrs. Lansing and Blanche Percy. The
former was short and fat and sat very erect, looking curiously about her
through a gold-handled _lorgnette_.

“Dumpy and Frumpy and Proud,” was Louie’s mental verdict of her; then
she scanned the lady beside her, who was tall and slender and fair, and
dressed in mourning, with a look of care or fatigue, or both, on her
face, which was very pale and very sweet: “Rather pretty, with an air
about her,” Louie thought, and turned next to the young man, Fred
Lansing, who was sitting on the side of the open carriage nearest to
her.

As he was looking another way, she could not see his face until, from
something Herbert said to him, he turned quickly and she saw a pale,
refined face, with perfectly regular features and a pair of large, dark
eyes, which met hers, while his hat was lifted for a moment, as she
bowed to Herbert, who had removed his cap and was waving it towards her.

“I believe he is a gentleman, but proud, of course. I wonder if Herbert
will tell him what people say of my father,” she thought, and grew hot
and dizzy as she recalled the insult.

“The Lansings are here,” she said to her father when he came home to
lunch.

“The Lansings? Who are they?” he answered abstractedly.

“Why, the grand relations of Judge White,” Louie replied; “his sister,
Mrs. Lansing, and her son Fred. They live in Washington now, but they
did live in Richmond before the war, and there’s a Miss Blanche Percy
with them, a great heiress and Mr. Lansing’s ward before he died. She
had a brother who was killed, or something, and I guess that is why her
face is so sad. I saw her just a minute as she went by,” Louie added,
too intent upon her strawberries and cream to notice the change in her
father as she talked, from one of indifference to absorbing interest.

The Lansings made no impression upon him, but when Blanche Percy was
mentioned, he became all attention, and had Louie been observing him,
she would have seen a pallor about his lips as he listened.

“Blanche Percy—from where?” he asked, and Louie replied, “From
Washington now—from Richmond formerly, where I told you the Lansings
lived. They are Southerners, and big swells, Herbert says.”

To this her father made no comment, but asked, “What was it about the
brother? What did you say his name was?”

“I didn’t say. I don’t know—Percy, most likely,” Louie replied. “Herbert
told me she had a twin brother who killed himself, or was killed—the
latter probably; those Southerners are so hot-headed.”

As Mr. Grey made no reply, Louie branched off upon the big party the
Whites were to have in honor of their guests, and to which no one was to
be invited from the town except those to whom Mrs. White was indebted,
and those who called upon Mrs. Lansing and Miss Percy.

“You’ll call, mother, won’t you? I want you and father to attend the
party, and tell me about it,” she said.

There was a sudden movement as of dissent from Mr. Grey, but before he
could speak his wife replied:

“I don’t think I shall trouble myself. I was here five years before Mrs.
White called upon me, and then she came when I am certain she knew I was
out. When I returned it, she was engaged, and she has never been near me
since. I shall not call on her or the Lansings.”

“Of course not,” Mr. Grey rejoined, with an asperity of manner unusual
with him.

He did not seem himself at all. He had a headache, he said, and,
declining the strawberries Louie urged upon him, left the table and went
to his room, where his wife found him lying upon the couch, either
asleep or pretending to be, for he neither spoke nor moved when she
entered the room. He was subject to headaches, and they had increased in
frequency within the last few years. This one seemed harder than usual,
and it was not till the next day that he went to the bank, before which
the White carriage was standing, with two ladies in it, Mrs. Lansing and
Blanche Percy, while Judge White was just coming down the steps to join
them.

Mr. Grey would rather have passed them unnoticed, but he never forgot to
be a gentleman, and in response to the judge’s rather gruff “good
morning, Grey,” he answered pleasantly and lifted his hat politely to
the two ladies.

“Who is that splendid-looking man?” Blanche asked as the judge entered
the carriage.

“That? Oh, that’s Tom Grey, the one-horse banker who has set up business
right under my nose; but he can’t run long, you’ll see,” the judge
replied, as they drove away, while the one-horse banker looked after
them till they were out of sight, with thoughts from which Louie would
have shrunk aghast if she could have known them.




                              CHAPTER III
                       INVITATIONS FOR THE PARTY


Merivale was one of those quiet New England towns where, compared with
larger places, the people seemed more asleep than awake, there was so
little to interest or excite them outside the routine of daily life.
There were no very poor people, for work of some sort was plenty, and
there were no very rich people, except Judge White, whose walk, as he
put down his heavy gold-headed cane, indicated money and the
self-importance he felt on account of it. There were four
churches—Episcopal, Presbyterian, Methodist and Roman Catholic—two
banks, a weekly paper, a high school, a book club, a struggling literary
society, three dry goods stores, six groceries, and ten saloons, which
the W. C. T. U.’s were vainly trying to suppress. Once in two weeks the
Presbyterians and Methodists had a sewing society, which few attended,
as it closed at five and every one went home to supper. Once a month the
Episcopalians had a meeting of the Guild, with supper and a large
attendance, especially at supper time, when the young people came in,
glad of any break in their rather monotonous lives. For a time Mrs.
White was president of the Guild, but when at an annual meeting Mrs.
Grey was made vice-president she resigned, giving as a reason that it
made her nervous to read the prayers with which the meetings were
opened. Mrs. Grey was elected to fill her place, and made a most popular
president. Under her jurisdiction, with Louie as coadjutor,
entertainments of various kinds were instituted, and the little town put
on quite an air of hilarity compared with what it had worn.

The Grey house was the centre of many gatherings where hospitality was
dispensed with a liberal hand, and all who chose to come were welcome.
But there were few parties or receptions, and when it was rumored that
Mrs. White was intending to give one, the town awoke to great activity
of speculation as to who would be invited and who slighted. Somehow the
news got abroad that only those who called upon the guests were to be
honored, and at once the tide set in toward the White house, where there
were more calls made and more cards left than had been left and made in
a year. Mrs. White was very reserved in manner and had no intimate
friends. She had her days when she was at home to those who chose to
call. Sometimes three or four came, and sometimes none, and she was
equally pleased either way, as she preferred the quiet of her own room
to society, if she were expected to exert herself. On the two occasions
when as president she had felt obliged to entertain the Guild, and
Herbert, who was socially inclined, had invited everybody, she had been
greatly bored and scandalized by the crowd which came, glad of a chance
to see the inside of the grand house and say they had been there. She
did not suppose there were so many common people in the Episcopal
Church, she said. She thought they belonged somewhere else, and after
she resigned her office as president of the Guild she withdrew from it
and thus freed herself from the obligation to entertain it again. And
still she liked the bustle and excitement of watering places and
fashionable life—if she could be in it and not of it—could see it go on,
and not feel obliged to talk to anyone unless she chose to do so.

People called her proud, and Herbert called her indolent, and she was
both. Now, however, with the advent of the Lansings she roused up and
opened all her treasures. They dined in the state dining-room. The best
silver and glass and linen were brought out. The carriage and horses
stood at the door at all hours. She went to Worcester and interviewed
the best caterer and the best florist there, and then with Herbert sat
down to address the invitations for the party which was to astonish the
people in Merivale, and so far eclipse a little party which Mrs. Grey
had given the previous winter that people who attended it would never
know they had been there. To this gathering Mrs. White had not been
bidden, as Mrs. Grey had confined her invitations to those to whom she
was indebted, or who had been polite to her. Mrs. White would have
scorned to acknowledge that she cared for being left out. “Why should I
be invited?” she had said to Herbert, who was expressing his surprise
and saying he knew there was a mistake, “Why should I be, when I
scarcely know Mrs. Grey?”

“It is your fault and loss, too,” Herbert replied, while his father, who
was present, chimed in, “Invited by the Greys, who used to live in
White’s Row with Nancy Sharp! I’d laugh! They have come up like
mushrooms, the Lord only knows how, but I can guess. I consider it a
compliment not to be invited to their blow-out. Music from Springfield,
with a caterer and flowers by the bushel! Must have cost him a pretty
sum, decorator and all!”

“They did not have a decorator,” Herbert had said. “Louie did it
herself. She has more taste than half the decorators in the country, and
they say the party was elegant every way, and Mr. and Mrs. Grey were
ideal host and hostess. I wish I had been there, but young folks like me
were not in it.”

“Glad you wasn’t. I believe you are Grey mad, and everybody else, but I
tell you I won’t have it! No, sir, I won’t have it!” The judge growled
as he left the house.

This was in the winter, and not long after the Grey party, which had
been much talked of as _recherché_ in every respect. Notwithstanding
what the judge and Mrs. White had said, their slight had secretly
rankled and increased their prejudice against the Greys. And now that
the White party was in progress, there was a chance not only to
retaliate, but to outdo all the Greys had done.

“If we are to have a blow-out we’ll do it brown and beat the Greys. The
idea! That one-horse banker riding over my head!” the judge said to his
wife when discussing the matter with her. “If the Greys had their truck
from Springfield, do you go to Boston or Worcester, and get the best
there is to be had. Don’t stop at prices. Did the Grey’s have a brass
band? No, only a string for dancing? Then we will have a brass—two if
you like. Beat the Greys anyhow! That’s all I ask. Judge White is good
for any amount. We haven’t had a party for years, and the Lansings don’t
come every day.”

This was the judge’s attitude, with which his wife sympathized to a
certain extent. She really had more good sense than her husband, but she
was largely dominated by his opinion, and when she at last sat down with
Herbert to direct the cards of invitation, two facts were prominent to
her mind. Her party was to surpass that of the Greys, and the Greys were
not to be invited. “We will take the townspeople first,” she said, and
began to read the names upon her list, hesitating over some and crossing
some out as not quite worthy to meet the Lansings.

Herbert had jotted down several names, which he submitted to his mother,
and among them were those of two Sheldon girls in the country, who, he
said, were good dancers and ought to be invited. Mrs. White shook her
head. She did not know the Sheldons. She had already exceeded the limit
set at first to her invitations, and had drawn the line on all country
people except the Gibsons, whose son had called on Fred, with whom he
had been in college. The Sheldons were thrown into the wastepaper
basket, with others who had preceded them, and Mr. and Mrs. and Miss
Grey were next suggested.

“Certainly not,” his mother said, more decidedly than she had to the
Sheldons. “I scarcely know Mrs. Grey, and have never been in her house,
nor has she been here, and your father has a strong dislike to Mr.
Grey.”

“Better say ‘unreasonable prejudice.’ It’s nothing but that,” Herbert
answered hotly. “Father has treated them like dogs, and people know it.
Why, Mr. Grey is by far the finest-looking man in town, and Mrs. Grey is
a lady, and Louie is a——”

Here he stopped, for Fred Lansing just then entered the room, and
hearing the last words and seeing Herbert’s flushed face, said
laughingly:

“Louie is a what? and who is Louie? Oh, I know; she is that pretty,
bright-eyed girl I have seen two or three times riding her wheel like
the wind. Is she to be one of the guests? I hope so.”

“Yes, she is,” Herbert answered emphatically, “and she has a wonderful
voice. Maybe we can get a song from her. I am writing the names now—Mr.
and Mrs. Grey. He is in the bank, you know, next to ours. You can help
put the cards in the envelopes, if you want to do something.”

Herbert was in a hurry to get the Greys settled before any further demur
from his mother. _They_ should be invited anyway, and he wrote the
addresses and passed the envelopes to his cousin, who put in the cards
of invitation and dropped them into the basket with others ready to be
delivered.

Mrs. White did not care for a controversy before Fred, and said nothing,
thinking she would remove the envelopes before the basket went out. But
she forgot it; and when, next morning, David went his rounds with the
invitations, two were left at Mr. Grey’s.

“Oh, mamma! Look! Invitations for us all, and you have not called,
either,” Louie cried, taking out one of the cards and reading that Mr.
and Mrs. White would be at home Thursday evening, June —, from eight to
twelve.

She was greatly excited, for she had thought a good deal of the party,
of which so much was being said in town, but her mother’s decided “We
shall decline” dampened her spirits at once. There was a storm of tears,
under which Mrs. Grey might have given way but for her husband, who,
when consulted, was more decided than his wife, and the regrets of the
three were sent to the White house on the day preceding the party,
bringing Herbert at once to the Greys with inquiries as to the reason
why Louie, at least, could not come, even if her parents stayed away.

“I’ve told Fred so much about you,” he said, “and he wants to see you,
and I was going to have mother get you to sing; Miss Percy is so fond of
singing, and such a good judge; and now everything is going wrong. The
head caterer cannot come, and will send some one in his place, and most
likely the crew will be drunk and serve ice cream first, and leave the
sandwiches in the pantry, as they did at Alice Rogers’; and now you are
not to be there, and I wish we were not to have the blow-out, and I
don’t care if it rains cats and dogs to-morrow. I hope it will.”

Having delivered this speech, which did not at all move either Mr. or
Mrs. Grey, Herbert flung himself out of the house, with a feeling that
he was a much-abused young man, and that without Louie the party would
be a failure.




                               CHAPTER IV
                        THE MORNING OF THE PARTY


“Yes, I hope it will rain,” Herbert said to himself as he went tearing
along the road towards home.

Just why he wished it to rain he did not know, except to spite
somebody—his father, perhaps, who was so unreasonably bitter against the
Greys, “the very nicest people in town, while Louie was certainly the
prettiest girl, and would cast in the shade anyone, whether from
Springfield or Worcester or Boston,” and he wanted Fred Lansing to see
her. It was a decided shame that she was not coming. Yes, he hoped it
would rain so hard nobody would come.

It did not rain, but there was a shower in the night, which laid the
dust and made the morning fresher and more delightful.

“Just the time for a drive,” the judge said to his guests after
breakfast was over. “We want to get away from this clatter, with things
generally upside down and Susan so rattled she don’t know what she is
about.”

A part of the waiters from Worcester had come to look over the premises
and make suggestions, and they were already in the kitchen and butler’s
pantry and rousing the ire of the cook and housemaids with their
criticisms. A florist was there with his assistants, and the rooms were
full of palms and flowers and potted plants. Crash was being laid down
for the dancing on a very broad and long piazza, which was screened from
public view by wide awnings, which could be rolled up if the night
proved hot, as it bade fair to do. At one end of the piazza the
orchestra was to sit, and the piano had to be moved into its place, with
chairs and rugs and divans for the lookers-on.

In the grounds preparations were making for the band which was to play
between the dances. Chinese lanterns were being suspended in fanciful
lines from the trees and from the house to the entrance of the grounds,
and everywhere were the hurry and bustle attending preparations for a
large entertainment, both outdoors and in. Not accustomed to giving
companies, Mrs. White was threatened with a nervous headache, and was in
a state of wild excitement, giving the most contradictory orders and
bewildering her assistants generally. Taken as a whole, the house was
topsy-turvy, with sixteen people at work, and none of them seemingly
level-headed except Fred Lansing, who, if allowed to do it, would have
brought order out of confusion, so quiet and systematic were all his
plans and movements. But the judge insisted upon taking him for a drive,
saying they would go to the bank first, as he wanted to see his cashier,
who had sent him a note early that morning, telling him that Godfrey
Sheldon, a farmer, who lived in the country and was his heaviest
depositor, had told him the night before that he was coming the next day
to draw out his five thousand dollars.

“Of course, we can stand a great deal more than that,” the cashier
wrote, “but wouldn’t it be safe to ask Sheldon to leave a part for a day
or two, until we receive that loan due to-morrow?”

“No, sir!” the judge said, as he read the note. “I’ll never ask any man
to wait for a dollar. My bank asking time! I’d laugh. Let Sheldon have
his money. He is an old curmudgeon, anyway, and has to be handled with
gloves. I wonder if he was invited to our party. It is like him to take
a miff if he isn’t; he feels himself of so much importance because he
was sent to the Legislature one winter and had Hon. before his name.
Susan, where are you?”

Susan came with a big white apron on, her mouth full of pins and a ball
of twine in her hands.

“Susan, were the Godfrey Sheldons invited?”

“Godfrey Sheldons—who are they?” Mrs. White replied, spitting the pins
from her mouth.

“Why, that red-headed chap in the country who went to the Legislature
and thinks he knows all creation; biggest depositor in my bank, with two
red-headed girls like himself. You must know ’em. They sit three pews
from us in church, across the aisle, and wear infernal big hats, while
he reads the loudest of anybody, as if the Lord was deaf, and looks
round to see who is listening to him. You must know him.”

Mrs. White did remember the big hats and the pompous man, who read
scarcely louder than her husband. “But I have no acquaintance with
them,” she said. “I believe Herbert did suggest that they be invited,
with a lot of others, who went into the waste basket. I asked the
Gibsons from the Corners. Their son was in Yale with Fred, and their
daughter has been to Vassar, but I didn’t suppose you wanted all the
country people invited who deposit with you, or I would have taken your
bank list.”

“Of course not,” the judge replied. “That would have included Nancy
Sharp and a lot more like her. Maybe that is what ails Sheldon, who is
drawing all his money at one lick, five thousand dollars, without giving
us notice. Not that it will burst the bank, but it looks queer when he
has always been so friendly with me.”

There was a call for Mrs. White, and she hurried away, giving no more
thought to Godfrey Sheldon and his red-headed daughters.

The carriage was at the door by this time, and the judge, with his
sister, Miss Percy, and Fred Lansing, were soon driving in the direction
of the bank. As they turned into a cross street they passed Louie,
resting on her wheel and talking with a young man, also on a wheel, who
seemed to have come from the opposite direction, and was evidently
telling something which excited them both. As the carriage came up their
voices dropped, but Fred Lansing was sure he caught the word “bank,” and
remembered afterward the peculiar look both gave to the judge.

“That’s an awfully pretty girl,” Fred said to Miss Percy. “A Miss Grey,
isn’t it?” and he turned to the judge, who answered, rather coldly:

“I didn’t notice particularly. There is a Grey girl in town some people
think pretty. She is generally on the street—quite a gadder. She is Tom
Grey’s daughter. He is running a little one-horse bank beside mine. But
he can’t hold out, with no capital that anybody knows of. I gave him six
months when he started, and he’s been at it four years, but he’ll come
to the end of his rope. Yes, sir! you’ll see. Hallo! what under the
heavens are those women running like that for? Is there a fire?” he
added, as on passing a corner he saw several women running rapidly in
the direction of Main Street, headed by Nancy Sharp, the washerwoman
from White’s Row, a part of whose small savings were deposited in his
bank, and who worked for his wife at intervals by way of paying her
rent.

Two of the women had on sun-bonnets, but Nancy was bareheaded, with her
sleeves rolled up and her big apron on, showing she had just come from
her washtub.

“What has happened?” he continued, as a woman came from another door and
ran bareheaded down the street, where she was joined by three more, all
evidently greatly excited, and talking loudly as they ran.

They had now reached a point from which they could see the white marble
walls of his bank in the distance. In front of it quite a crowd was
gathered, while it seemed to be the point toward which the women were
running. David, the coachman, called the judge’s attention to it, and
the latter was standing up to look when Louie Grey darted by on her
wheel.

“Hallo, girl! what’s your name? Louisa, ain’t it? What’s up? What’s that
mob about? Stop, can’t you?” the judge called, with a feeling that Louie
was bound for the mob, and could tell him what it meant.

His voice was like a trumpet, and the “Louisa” reached Louie, who turned
quickly, and, coming back to meet the carriage, replied in some
surprise, “Why, it’s a run on the bank. Don’t you know? Haven’t you
heard?”

With a slight inclination of her head to the ladies and to Fred Lansing,
who had lifted his hat, she was off like the wind, while the judge sank
down upon the seat, and, rubbing his fat hands complacently together,
said:

“A run on Grey’s bank! I told you so. I knew he couldn’t go on much
longer. No, sir! He’s come to the end of his rope; speculated a little
too often. I knew he would. Drive faster, Dave; I want to get there.”

Dave touched the spirited blacks, which sprang forward at so rapid a
rate that they came near running into a van full of household goods
before it could turn aside.

“Hallo, there, Dave! Stop a minute,” the judge said to the driver, who
pulled up suddenly. Then to the truckman, whom he knew, the judge
continued, “I say, Pete, when did the run on Grey’s Bank begin, and what
started it?”

There was a look of immense surprise on Peter’s face as he stared at the
judge for a moment; then a broad grin spread over his features as he
replied:

“For the Lord’s sake, jedge, don’t you know ’tain’t Grey’s Bank the runs
on. Hain’t you heard? It’s your’n, and looks as if they meant to clean
you out, and I guess they’ll do it, too, if you hain’t a pile on hand.
The whole town is up in arms. See ’em runnin’ like ants when their nest
is broke up.”

He was not a depositor, and he did not like the judge, and with another
grin, he chirruped to his horses and passed on, while the judge fell
back in his seat again, gasping for breath and pulling at his collar as
if it were too tight and choked him.




                               CHAPTER V
                                THE RUN


As the judge was a warden, he seldom swore. He didn’t think “the Devil”
was a swear word, and he said it now very emphatically, as he clutched
his collar.

“A run on my bank! On the First National! That’s as firm as a rock.
Inspectors here only a month ago. Why should anybody run, and what for?
I can pay every dollar—give me time,” he said.

Then, as he remembered the five thousand dollars Godfrey Sheldon was to
draw that morning, and probably had drawn by that time, he gave a little
groan, for in case of a prolonged run that might cripple him, he had so
much money loaned out.

“Drive on, Dave. Drive like thunder—right into the midst of ’em, an’ run
’em down if they don’t get out of the way,” he shouted, standing up
again and gesticulating with the hand which was not fumbling at his
throat, in which his heart seemed swelling.

There was no need to urge Dave to drive on. He was as anxious to reach
the place as his master, and in a few minutes the black horses were
reined up at the door of the bank, the crowd dividing right and left to
give them way, and staring at the figure the judge presented, standing
now on the seat and shaking his fist at the faces confronting him.

There were at least one hundred people there—men, women and children,
especially boys, some frantically pushing and elbowing each other in
their efforts to get to the door, from which two or three were emerging
with a satisfied look on their faces and something held tight in their
hands. Others were spectators drawn there from curiosity, but all
filling the walk and the street, and making Fred Lansing think of a mob
he once saw in Paris. He had sprung to the ground and said to his uncle:

“David had better take the ladies home at once. This is no place for
them.”

“Yes, yes,” the judge replied, and when his sister asked if she should
tell his wife to stop the party, he answered: “Stop the party! Thunder!
No; why should she? That would be confessing I was broke. I ain’t by a
long shot. I’ve money enough to pay these cattle a hundred times over.
Not in the bank this minute, of course. But I can get it. The cusses!
What do they mean? Running me! Me!”

He shook his fist threateningly at the crowd, one of whom, a ragged boy,
called out derisively:

“Shake away, old money bags; nobody’s afraid of you, but my mother wants
her fifty dollars, and she’s goin’ to have it. She put ten dollars in
Saturday, and nobody told her you was busted.”

The judge did not hear him. He was struggling up the steps, assisted by
Fred to the door, where he was met by Herbert, who was white as a
corpse, with a scared look on his face.

“Oh, father,” he cried, “I’m so glad you have come. I should have sent
for you, but thought you were off in the country driving. There’s the
old Harry to pay.”

“Pay him then! There’s money enough,” the judge roared, going behind the
screens and facing the two women presenting their claims and demanding
their money, which they promptly received.

It was a genuine run, such as small places like Merivale seldom see, and
just how it commenced, or why, no one could tell, unless it were Godfrey
Sheldon, who was a weak-brained, pig-headed, jealous man, thinking far
too much of himself since his one term in the Legislature. He was very
proud of his friendship with Judge White, whom he would sometimes slap
on the shoulder and call “old boy,” by way of showing his familiarity
with the great man of the town. He knew he was the heaviest depositor in
the White Bank, and presumed a good deal on that account, and sometimes
chafed because no attention was ever paid his family by Mrs. White and
not much by Herbert.

“My girls are as good as anybody,” he was wont to say of his two
red-headed daughters, who fully concurred with him in his opinion of
themselves.

They certainly were as good as the Gibsons, they thought; and when the
grand party came to the front and the Gibsons were invited and they were
not, their jealousy was at once excited, but did not reach the boiling
point, which meant mischief, until a report reached them that Mrs. White
had been heard to say that, aside from the Gibsons, she drew the line on
all country bumpkins, and especially the Sheldons. This, of course, was
an exaggeration of what she did say, but, passing through the many lips
it did, it is strange it had not assumed greater proportions by the time
it reached and fired the Sheldon household.

The girls were furious, and their father was not far behind them. For
him, an Honorable, to be classed with country bumpkins was an insult not
to be borne meekly; and, like most small natures, revenge of some sort
was his first thought.

But how should he take it? What could he do that a man like Judge White
would feel? Suddenly he remembered his money, which he had always kept
in the White Bank, and as he was needing a small part of it soon, he
would take it all out and deposit it with Tom Grey. There was a man who
did not feel so all-fired big, and whose daughter was nice to his girls
and had once spent a day at his house and had Sarah and May at a
musicale the winter before. Yes, he’d withdraw his money from Bob White
and give it to Tom Grey, he decided, without any thought of creating a
panic which might result in a run; nor had he any such idea when he
spoke to two or three of his neighbors and told them what he was going
to do, giving no reason, when asked for one, except that he knew what he
was about and accompanying the words with a gesture which was more
suggestive than words.

Some people are always suspicious of the soundness of a bank, and the
few to whom Mr. Sheldon told his intentions were of this class, and all
had money in White’s Bank.

If Godfrey Sheldon, who was hand in glove with the judge, was going to
take out his money, there must be something wrong. They would go to the
village and see.

Accordingly, that night there was quite a number of people from the
country in town, talking low and confidentially to others; and before
bedtime there was scarcely a depositor who had not heard it hinted that
the White Bank was shaky. A few disbelieved it, while others thought it
well to be on the safe side and take out what money they had before it
was too late. The country depositors were specially cautious, and on
hand early. Before nine o’clock many vehicles were in town. Some were at
the hotel; others were under shade trees and in the shed behind the
church, while the owners were congregated near the banks, waiting for
them to open. These were joined at intervals by some of the villagers,
and as the news spread the number increased and more were coming, until
the street was black with them.

Herbert, who was downtown on an errand for his mother, had stepped into
the bank to speak to the cashier, with whom he was talking for some
time, unconscious of what was taking place outside. Hearing the sound of
many voices, followed at last by a vigorous shaking of the heavy doors,
which had not yet been opened to the public, he looked from the window
and, seeing the crowd, exclaimed to the cashier:

“Harry, Harry, what is all this? and why are there so many people in
front of the bank acting as if they meant to get in?”

One glance at the crowd, and it flashed upon the cashier like a
presentiment that here was a run. He had been in one before, when the
bank, which if left to its ordinary business, was safe, went down under
the overwhelming tide, and his voice shook as he said:

“It looks like a run!”

“A run!” Herbert repeated. “Not on father’s bank, sure. It must be on
Grey’s.”

“No, it is this one,” the cashier replied. “They are all looking at our
windows, and don’t you hear the pounds on the door; and see, there are
more coming—a lot of women, headed by old Nancy Sharp, with her arms
akimbo and her hair down her back. It is a regular run, and no mistake!”

“Well, let them run. There’s money enough to pay all their demands,
isn’t there?” Herbert asked.

The cashier shook his head doubtfully.

“If we had on hand all we have loaned out we could stand it. But no bank
has that. The loans are greater, of course, than the amount kept for
emergencies, and if all the depositors spring upon us, as most are
likely to do if one does, we may be swamped for a time. There’s Sheldon
gave notice last night that he must have his five thousand to-day. If he
would wait till to-morrow, when a heavy loan we have out will be paid,
we shall be all right. But he won’t; he is a kind of a dog in the
manger, and something has gone wrong. He’ll draw his money, and others
will follow. Men are like sheep, and women are worse. There is Sheldon
now talking to some men and pointing this way.”

The pounding on the door was loud by this time, mingled with calls:

“Let us in! It’s time! It’s after nine. You have no business to keep us
out, and we mean to come in.”

“Shall we keep them out till father comes?” Herbert asked, his teeth
chattering with the cold chill which had come over him and increased
with the sounds outside. It was a kind of roar now, as the cries, “Open
the door!” became louder—cries of more women than men, as the former
were more excited. “Say, shall we keep them out till father comes?”
Herbert asked again.

“By no means,” the cashier replied. “That would confess our fear.
Possibly we can persuade Sheldon to leave a part of his till to-morrow.
Open the door, Charlie,” and he turned to the office boy, whose eyes
were like saucers as he shot back the bolts and threw open the doors so
suddenly that two or three of the foremost ones, pushed by those behind,
fell headlong across the threshold.

Mr. Sheldon, who was in advance, was the first on his feet and inside
the bank.

He knew by this time what the crowd meant, and he had explained, as far
as he could, that he was only drawing his money because he wanted it,
and not because he was afraid. He might as well have talked to the wind.
Their minds were made up. If he wanted his money, they wanted theirs,
and meant to have it.

When Mr. Sheldon presented himself before the cashier and said to him,
“You know I told you I was coming for my money. I suppose it’s ready?”
the cashier replied very blandly, “Certainly it is.”

At this point Herbert, who was standing by the cashier, with a face
white as marble, interposed and said:

“Of course, you can have it, but it seems to me it is a large sum to
draw out without a moment’s warning. Can’t you wait for a part of it
till to-morrow? Suppose those fellows behind you should all demand their
money at once, what should we do?”

This was like a red flag to a maddened bull. Herbert was the son of the
house, and it was undoubtedly his doings that the Gibsons were invited
and his daughters slighted. Any regret Sheldon might have had for what
he was doing vanished, and he replied:

“Hanged if I care what you do,” while the cashier, who was counting out
the bills, kicked Herbert with his foot trying to stop him, as he saw he
was making matters worse by showing fear.

The cashier, however, tried what he could do by saying very cheerfully:

“You can have more if you wish, but it would be a convenience if you
could wait till to-morrow, when a heavy loan is to be paid.”

He had half the money counted, and paused for a reply, which was, “I
shan’t wait an hour. I want my money _now_!” the words accompanied by a
nod to emphasize each word.

“All right,” the cashier answered, going on with his work, while one or
two standing behind Mr. Sheldon said:

“What’s that he says? Wants us to wait till to-morrow? Not much! We will
have it now.”

The words were caught up by those outside, and ran through the crowd
like wildfire, gaining strength as they ran, until by the time they
reached the outer circle it was affirmed that the bank could pay no more
that day.

Those who have witnessed a run on a bank know how the excitement grows
until people, ordinarily cool and sane, grow wild and mad, and howl
sometimes like beasts at the prospect of losing their money. And so it
was now at the White Bank, where the excitement was intense, especially
among the small depositors—the women, whose little was all in the bank.
These were furious, and made their way to the door just as Mr. Sheldon
came out, with a half sheepish look on his face, as if he had done a
mean thing, and was half sorry for it.

“But Bob White can stand it,” he thought, as he walked into Grey’s Bank,
where the consternation and excitement was nearly as great as in the
other bank, and where Louie on her wheel had just arrived, breathless
and panting.

When Mr. Grey first saw the crowd gathering in the street he had no
suspicion of the cause until he heard the pounds upon the door and the
cries to be let in. Then he said to Mr. Wilson, his cashier:

“What upon earth is the matter? Looks like a run?”

“’Tis a run,” Mr. Wilson answered dryly, opening their own door and
stepping outside, where he stood, occasionally exchanging a word with
some one asking if he thought the bank could stand the pressure.

Wilson didn’t know. All depended upon how much ready cash it had on
hand. No bank expected to be called on any minute for every dollar, he
said. Bob White could pay all he owed twice over, give him time, and his
advice was that the howling idiots disperse and go home.

The howling idiots had no thought of going home. Some of those who at
first had no intention to draw out their money concluded to do so now,
if they could get a chance. And there lay a trouble. It took some time
to pay off the applicants who were first in, and some time for them to
get out, so thickly were the people packed upon the steps, and so
unwilling were they to yield an inch of ground, and the excitement was
increasing when the judge’s carriage dashed down the street and up to
the door.

The sight of the judge standing on the seat and flourishing his hands
brought a slight lull in the storm of voices, and the people watched him
curiously and wondered what he was going to do. He did not know
himself—the whole thing was so appalling and unexpected that he trembled
with fear as he went up the steps, anxious to get inside, where he felt
he should be safer than outside in the midst of that cyclone. When at
last he was in the bank and stood inside the screen facing the two
women, he felt better, and glaring at them savagely, asked:

“How much do you want?”

“Twenty-five dollars that I earned with my eggs and chickens,” and
“Thirty dollars I earned by washing,” were the replies, as two pairs of
brown, hard hands were stretched out eagerly toward Harry Groves, the
cashier.

“Twenty-five dollars and thirty dollars! A big sum to make such a row
about. Pay ’em, Groves; and now get out of here,” the judge said
angrily; then, to the office boy, “Shut those doors a minute, and keep
that infernal rabble out till I can think and hear what you’ve done and
how much money there is left.”

It was not so easy a matter to shut the doors with that human wall
pressing against them, and only the tact of Fred Lansing availed to do
it. He was very cool and calm and reassuring, asking the people to stand
aside a moment, and telling them the doors should certainly be opened
again.

“The judge has just come,” he said, “and this is a great surprise. He
wants to hear something about it from his clerks, and can’t very well
with so much noise in the street, if the door is open. So, my good lady,
if you will please step out, I am sure others will follow you. That’s
right; thank you.”

This was to Nancy Sharp, who had fought her way into the vestibule and
was holding aloft her bank-book and flourishing her bare, red arms,
which showed frequent acquaintance with soapsuds. She had money in both
banks, and, although she had not much in White’s, she didn’t propose to
lose it, she said, and she at first looked defiantly at Fred Lansing,
when he tried to clear the vestibule. But when he beamed upon her a
smile which few women ever resisted and called her “my good lady,” she
was vanquished at once, and walked out, saying to her companions, who
were all women, “Come on, gals, but stick close to the door, so’s to get
in the minit it is opened. It will be opened?” and she looked at Fred,
who answered:

“Certainly, madam. I give you my word of honor. It will be opened and
you will be paid.”

“All right,” and Nancy nodded familiarly to him as she took her place on
the steps outside and stood very near to Louie, who had entered her
father’s bank at the rear and had come to the front door, where she
stared astounded at the scene and thankful that it was not her father’s
bank on which the run was made.

There was a brass railing in the centre of the stone steps leading to
the entrance of the two banks, and as Louie leaned against it her arm
was seized by Nancy, who began to talk loud and volubly of the failure,
as she called it, and the loss to her if the judge did not pay.

“I was a fool to put any with him,” she said, “but I thought two places
safer than one, and now see what I’ve got by it. Twenty good, round
silver dollars in the bank, and every one means a hard day’s work
a-washin’—two for the Whites, two for your folks, one for Miss Smith,
one for Mrs. Dr. Adams, and one for——”

She would probably have enumerated every family represented by her
twenty round silver dollars if Louie had not stopped her with a “Hush-h!
Look up there. He is going to speak,” and she pointed to a balcony in
the second story, where Judge White stood, waving his hands to enforce
silence. He had inquired into matters a little, and learned from his
cashier how much had already been drawn from the bank, and about how
much currency there was left.

“Godfrey Sheldon’s five thousand was a blow,” the cashier said. “There
are three more who have each a thousand deposited. They haven’t appeared
yet, and I hope they won’t. It is the small depositors who are making
the biggest row, and there is a pile of ’em.”

The judge knew this, and knew, too, that within the last year or two,
when his rival had seemed to prosper, he had tried in underhand ways, by
sly insinuations and sneers against the Grey Bank, to secure the
patronage of these very people, who in a panic lose all sense and
reason, and now he was reaping his reward.

“If those big fellows keep quiet, and I think they will—they are a
different class—we may pull through; or if you could persuade them that
everything is sound and square and there is no need for this run. But I
doubt if you can. They keep coming from every quarter, like bees round a
honeypot. There’s a whole load of fresh ones!” the cashier said,
pointing to a democrat wagon full of men and women from the country,
driving up in hot haste, either to see what was going on or to get what
was due them, the latter most likely, as the moment they alighted they
pushed through the crowd, asking eagerly, “Are we too late? Has it
bust?”

The judge groaned, and thought a moment. He was perspiring at every
pore, and had removed his coat and necktie and collar, so as to breathe
more freely.

“I’ll speak to ’em,” he said. “I’ll tell ’em to go home. By the Lord, I
wish I had a shotgun! I’d fire into ’em. It’s like a strike, and against
me—_me_!”

He was purple in the face, and shaking with rage, and Fred Lansing
doubted the expediency of his speaking to the crowd in his present mood.
But he was determined, and nothing could stop him. The idiots would
listen to _him_, Judge White, and going up the stairs which led from his
rear office to the hall of the second floor, he entered a law office
along whose windows a narrow balcony ran. This was filled with the
occupants of the second floor, but they made room for the judge, whose
voice, always strong and powerful, rang out like a great horn, and
attracted every eye to him as he stood, coatless and hatless, with
collar and necktie gone, his face purple, except his nose and lips,
which were ghastly white. He was not much like the faultlessly attired
man the people had been accustomed to see driving in his handsome
carriage behind his black horses and his coachman in brown-coated and
brass-buttoned livery, a thing some had ridiculed as airs, and others
had resented as a badge of servitude not fitted to a small place like
Merivale. The judge was not popular, and had never tried to make himself
so, except when there was something to be gained by it. As a rule, he
was haughty and arrogant, ignoring the common people entirely, or
noticing them with a nod which told the distance he thought there was
between them and himself.

At sight of him and the sound of his voice shouting, “Order, you
fellows! Order, I say! Don’t you hear me?” a hush fell for a moment on
the crowd; then, a group of boys, some of whom had felt the weight of
his gold-headed cane when he caught them in his melon patch, set up a
caterwauling, with cries of:

“There he is! There’s old money bags! Isn’t he a beauty? He’s going to
make a speech. Better give us what you owe us than your gab.”

But for Fred Lansing, Herbert would have rushed into the street and
collared the boys insulting his father, who tottered as if about to fall
and leaned heavily on his cane, as the cries came up to him, louder and
more vociferous.

“Silence, you ragamuffins, you villains, you fools!” he roared,
flourishing his cane in the air, and in his backward sweep almost
hitting Fred Lansing, who had hurried up the stairs and stood at his
side, with an arm on his shoulder to steady him, and something in his
manner which commanded attention and respect.

“My dear friends, ladies and gentlemen,” he began. “Please keep quiet
and let the judge speak and explain matters, which he can do to your
entire satisfaction.”

Cries of “Go on, go on; hear, hear!” now came from the boys, one of whom
was knocked down by a sympathizer with the judge, who saw the act and
called out, “Yes, that’s it; knock ’em all down; wring their necks; send
for the police and have ’em arrested, every mother’s son of ’em.”

“Hush! Hush!” Fred Lansing said in a whisper. “Go it mild, or you are
lost.”

It was not in the judge’s nature to “go it mild,” but he made an effort
and began to explain that there was no earthly reason for this outrage,
and he didn’t know how it happened or who started it. Whoever did was an
infernal fool, and ought to be tarred and feathered. “Running on _me_!
Me! who has inspectors reg’lar. Now, if ’twas t’other bank, that runs
itself, with nobody to oversee what was going on, there might be some
sense in getting up this hullabaloo! But to spring it on me—_me_! It’s
an outrage. Lord Harry, don’t you know who I am!”

“Oh, rot, rot. We know who you be, so come to business and tell us how
many cents on a dollar you can pay,” came from the boys, who belonged to
the worst class in town, and were glad for this opportunity to scoff at
a big bug without fear.

“Hush! Go a little easier,” Fred Lansing said, and the judge replied,
“‘Tain’t so easy goin’ easy with such dirt.” Then, to the dirt, he
continued:

“Look here and listen. I can pay every red cent and a hundred times
more—only give me time. I’m an honest man, I am. Nobody ever said I
wasn’t, but no bank wants a thing sprung on it like this, and few can
stand it if everybody calls for their deposit and wants every dollar
taken out at once. Heavens and earth,” he continued, warming up to the
subject and growing more and more excited as he warmed, “are you fools
enough to suppose that all your deposits are lying just where I put ’em
when you brought ’em in? Where, I’d like to know, would I get my pay for
my trouble, if I didn’t loan ’em out, keeping enough on hand to satisfy
all reasonable demands, though not enough to meet a general run sprung
on me unawares. It’s something like this: Suppose you owed somebody, and
somebody else owed you enough to pay the somebody you owed, and the
somebody you owed should come up and insist on being paid, the day
before the somebody who owed you was going to pay what he owed, what
would you do?”

He was getting rather hazy with “the somebody who owed him” and “the
somebody whom he owed,” but his audience followed him pretty clearly as
he went on: “Just so with me. You come howling for your money, set on by
the Lord only knows who; but I can guess pretty well,” and he glanced
toward Grey’s Bank, while a low murmur of dissent began to run through
the crowd, and one or two voices called out, “You are off the track, old
chap.”

To this the judge paid no attention, and went on:

“Yes, I say you come howling like dogs, as if you thought every cent of
your money was lying loose in the bank, ready to be called out in a
minute. I tell you ’tain’t so; but to-morrow a big loan is coming in and
you shall have every d——”

He paused a moment, thinking to use a swear word, then changed his mind,
and added, “every darned dollar. Are you satisfied? If you are, go home
about your business, and be ashamed for the way you have treated
me—_me_! If not, do your worst, and be——” he did use a swear word then,
and added: “What are you going to do with your money when you get it?
Keep it in your houses till it is stolen by burglars, or what?”

The majority of his audience had seen the truth in his remarks, and a
few, who had intended to withdraw their money, if they could get a
chance, slipped to the opposite side of the street, where they stood
watching, what one of them said was “as good as a circus.” In response
to the judge’s question, “What are you going to do with your money when
you get it?” an answer came from a dozen throats: “Put it in Grey’s
Bank, where Sheldon has put his’n. It’s safe there. Grey is the man for
us. Grey is all right!”

“Put it there and be ——,” the judge swore again, while from the boys,
whose numbers had considerably increased, there went up “Three cheers
and a tiger for Grey, the honest banker, and a groan for “money bags.””

The cheers and tiger were given, but before the groan for “money bags”
the fence on which the boys were seated went down with a crash,
diverting the interest for a moment from the judge, who left the balcony
and returned to the bank, where he sank exhausted into a chair, looking
so white that Herbert was alarmed, and asked if they should not send for
a doctor.

“Thunder, no!” his father said. “What do we want of a doctor? More like
send for the police. Hear that thundering on the door, will you! Open,
and let ’em in; the sooner the farce is over the better. I b’lieve we
can stand it.”




                               CHAPTER VI
                       LOUIE COMES TO THE RESCUE


When she heard the cry, “Put it in Grey’s Bank, where Sheldon has put
his,” she started quickly, struck with a thought of something she had
read about. Going into the bank, where two or three were already
depositing their money, she drew her father aside and said:

“Do you think the White Bank can stand the run?”

“Doubtful, if the most of them pitch in as they seem likely to do. They
are just crazy, and one excites the other.”

“Then we must help him,” Louie said.

“Help him? We can’t disperse that rabble, and the entire scum of the
town is here. Every depositor may ask for his money. No bank can stand
that,” her father answered.

“I don’t mean to disperse the rabble,” Louie replied. “Many of them are
bringing their money to you, and as fast as they bring it we can take it
through our back door into the back door of the other bank and keep it
circulating.”

Mr. Grey knew what she meant, and remembered having heard of one bank
helping another in such an emergency and had thought it a big joke, and
now the idea struck his sense of humor, and made him laugh.

“By George, Lou,” he said, “that would be heaping coals of fire on the
old reprobate’s head. He has never let a chance slip for a fling at me
when he could get it. Why, on the balcony when making his speech he
hinted that I was the instigator of the run. Yes, I’ll help him—but how,
and keep it dark?”

“I know. I’ll manage it,” Louie said. “As the money comes in at the
front door and is recorded, I’ll take it through the rear door to the
other bank. I’ll go now and tell Herbert.”

She was off in a flash through the back door of her father’s bank, and
into the rear office of the White Bank, where she found both Fred
Lansing and Herbert conferring together. The latter was pale and
trembling with anger and excitement, and looked perfectly dazed when she
told why she was there.

“I don’t quite understand. I’m all used up and could be knocked down
with a feather,” he said.

Louie saw he was no good, and, turning to Fred Lansing, she continued:

“You know what I mean. I will bring the money in here. Somebody must be
ready to take it and write down how much there is and whose it is, as it
will have to go back to us when the run is over.”

She had not been formally presented to Mr. Lansing, but it didn’t
matter. He knew who she was, and looked at her in unbounded admiration
for her forethought and bravery as well as for her beauty, which blazed
with unwonted brilliancy in her excitement and earnestness.

“I understand,” he said. “I’ll keep tally, while Herbert gets the money
quietly into the cashier’s hands.”

“All right,” Louie responded, and was off before Herbert fully realized
what she meant to do.

When Fred explained to him, he brightened at once, and hurrying into the
front room told the cashier, who, having heard of something like it,
nodded that he understood and would do his part to hoodwink the crowd
again trying to get in.

“Open the door, I tell you,” the judge said feebly, fanning himself with
a newspaper and wiping the sweat from his face with his shirt sleeve.

He had been wet with perspiration when he went out upon the balcony, and
now there was scarcely a dry thread on him, and he hardly knew what he
was about. His head ached. His heart was beating with great thuds, which
he could hear above the noise outside, and a spasm of fear seized him
when a face appeared at the window. Some one had climbed up the
water-pipe and was looking at him threateningly.

“Oh,” he gasped, “this is terrible. I shall have to go home. I b’lieve I
am dying. Herbert! Herbert! Come here!”

Herbert came quickly, and said to him: “Brace up and put on your coat.
We are going through. They can run till doomsday, and we’ll hold out.”

The judge did not know what he meant, but he felt cheered in some way,
and put on his coat, and was standing up when the door swung open a
second time and four women came in, headed by Nancy Sharp, who thrust
her great bare red arm through the opening in the screen and said to the
cashier, “I want my money—twenty good round silver dollars, honestly
earned by washing.”

She might have told for whom she had washed, as she did to Louie, if the
woman behind her had not struck her in the back and bidden her “hold her
yap and hurry up,” while the clerk replied, “You shall have it,” and he
counted it out in bills.

“No you don’t,” Nancy said, drawing back. “I put in round silver
dollars, and I want ’em.”

She had reasoned that a bank which was shaky might pass spurious bills,
and she would have none of them. She wanted silver dollars, and she
meant to have them.

“Very well,” the clerk said, taking back the bills and counting out
twenty silver dollars. “Was there a private mark on them, by which you
can know if these are the same?” he asked, with a merry twinkle in his
eyes.

“No,” she answered, “but I’ll put one on ’em, so if they are not good I
can bring them back. Give me a pencil.”

He gave her one, and, wetting it with her lips, she made a little cross
on each of her twenty dollars, and stood aside for the women crowding
against her. Within ten or fifteen minutes her account in the Grey Bank
was increased by twenty dollars, and rather reluctantly she went back to
her washing, finding the fire out and her water cold. But she did not
mind it. She was safe, and cared but little how the tide of battle ebbed
and flowed, although she would like to have stayed and seen it out.

It was moving briskly now and very satisfactorily on both sides,
although for a few moments there had been a tremendous panic when a
rumor went through the crowd that the cashier had deserted his post and
the bank had stopped paying. This arose from the fact that Herbert had
asked the cashier to step into the rear office, while they explained
more fully to him what was being done, and how they were doing it.

Seeing his place vacant, and no one in the room but the office boy and
the judge, who, having got his coat on, was sitting quietly by himself,
the whispered words “The bank has bust” went from lip to lip, eliciting
something like an angry growl from those who fancied themselves left out
in the run. But this ceased as soon as the cashier returned, more bland,
more smiling than ever, and business began again, while Herbert and the
boy made frequent trips to the rear office without any one suspecting
what they were doing, or that their money was scarcely deposited in the
Grey Bank before it was carried out by Louie, who was entering heart and
soul into the matter.

It was fortunate that the rear doors of the banks opened into the same
yard, which was shut in from the street by a close high fence over which
no one could look. And thus no one saw Louie hurrying back and forth
with flushed cheeks and eyes like stars as they confronted Fred Lansing,
who, in watching her, sometimes came near forgetting what he was doing,
until her voice, asking if he understood and had it down all right, made
him pull himself together and go on with his business of keeping account
of all the money which passed through his hands into the bank beyond,
with the names of the owners.

“Tom Carson, one hundred dollars,” she would say to him, and he would
write it down and report “Tom Carson, one hundred dollars.” “John Brown,
two hundred dollars;” “John Brown, two hundred dollars;” “Sarah Jones,
fifty dollars;” “Sarah Jones, fifty dollars;” “Joel Carpenter,
twenty-five dollars;” “Joel Carpenter, twenty-five dollars;” “Nancy
Sharp, twenty dollars;” “Nancy Sharp, twenty dollars—all in silver,
too,” Fred said, as he received and recorded the amount.

Louie had said to her father’s cashier, “Give me silver when you can.
Some of the women ask for it;” so Nancy’s twenty dollars, with the
pencil cross upon them went through four times, till they were as
familiar to Fred as an old friend. At last, “Godfrey Sheldon, one
thousand dollars,” was reported to him, with the whispered words, “He
has four thousand more we can have, but father thought he’d better start
with one. Aren’t they nearly through?”

She was very tired—not so much with fatigue as with the pitch of
excitement, to which she was strung up, and she wondered if it would
never end, and the last depositor depart.

The end came at last, as the town clock struck twelve, and the crowd
began to disperse rapidly—some with their money in their hands, while
others left it in the Grey Bank, and others still, when they saw how
readily the payments were made, had concluded to leave what they had in
the White Bank, which had shown no signs of giving out.

Not so many had demanded their money as would seem from this written
account, but the withdrawal and transfer had all taken time, and three
hours had elapsed between the opening of the doors and the closing of
them upon the last claimant for forty dollars. Quiet was restored. The
run was over, and Judge White was listening with wonder to the cashier’s
account of the manner in which the bank had been saved.

“The Grey girl did it! Where is she?” he asked, and the cashier motioned
him toward the outer room, where Louie lay fainting in Fred Lansing’s
arms.

The day was hot and sultry, and, overcome by the heat and the
excitement, she had felt her strength giving way for some little time
before. Herbert said to her, “Don’t bring any more. The people are going
home.”

Then everything began to turn dark; the floor came up to meet her, and
with a cry she fell forward, while Fred Lansing, who had seen how white
she was growing, sprang forward and caught her.

When she came to herself her head was lying on his shoulder. His arm was
round her, and her hair and shirtwaist were as wet as if she had been in
a bathtub. Her father and Wilson, his cashier, the judge and his
cashier, with Herbert were fanning her and calling her by name. They
could think of nothing else to do except to drench her with water, which
they did effectually, while Fred, with his handkerchief, tried to wipe
some of it from her face and hair.

With a long gasp she came back to consciousness, but did not try to lift
up her head. It seemed to her she could never lift it again, she was so
tired and exhausted. Raising her eyes she saw who was holding her so
carefully, and for a moment a hot flush stained her face, then faded and
left it as pale as before. She did not at first realize that quiet was
restored, and said:

“I must have fainted. I am so sorry, but there are piles of money yet.
Mr. Sheldon’s three thousand, and Nancy Sharp’s twenty dollars ready to
circulate again, if they must have silver.”

Then Fred laughed and said, “We are through with Nancy Sharp’s twenty
dollars, though I confess I’d like to see them once more. The run is
over and you are the heroine of the day. You saved the bank!”

“Yes, by George, you did,” the judge exclaimed in a shaky voice. “You
are a plucky girl and I shan’t forget it. No, sir; I shan’t forget it.
Not but we could have pulled through, but you were plucky just the same.
And now, as soon as things are straightened and everything made right
with ‘tother bank—the accounts, I mean—and the money returned which we
didn’t use, we ought to go home. Susan has telephoned two or three
times. Lunch is early to-day, because of the party.”

“Yes, it is time Louie was home,” Mr. Grey said, asking if she felt
equal to mounting her wheel.

Up to this time the judge had paid no attention to Mr. Grey, but now he
turned to him and said, “I must say, Grey, that girl of yours has a head
on her. Yes, sir, a head on her to think of such a plan, though ’tain’t
original. Such things have been done before, but all the same I’m
obliged to you, I am sure. I guess, though, we could have pulled
through.”

“No we couldn’t,” Herbert exclaimed, chagrined that his father evinced
so little gratitude for Mr. Grey’s help. “I was in it—was behind the
scenes and I know we would have gone to the wall if the other bank
hadn’t helped us, and we ought to be eternally grateful.”

The judge frowned, straightened himself up, threw out his stomach, and
said, “Certainly, of course, we are grateful and glad the thing is over.
I was never so insulted in my life. Yes, sir, we are grateful.”

He bowed rather stiffly to Mr. Grey, on whose face there was an amused
smile as he replied, “You are quite welcome to any service we rendered
you. I am very glad your bank stood the test.”

“Stood! of course it stood,” the judge answered testily, unwilling, in
his small soul, to acknowledge, as he ought, the great favor which had
been shown him, or that his bank, the First National, could possibly
have been in any real danger.

At this moment the White carriage with the black horses drew up before
the door, and Fred suggested that Louie be sent home in that. She was
too dazed to object to anything, and was soon seated, with the judge
beside her, and Fred and Herbert in front of her, and was driven in
state through the village, where knots of men were still congregated at
the corners of the streets, talking the matter over and feeling ashamed
of the part they had had in it.

“Stood like a rock!” they said, referring to the bank; “and it almost
seemed as if the more we took out the more there was to take.” And not
one of them had a suspicion of the truth, so well had it been managed.

As the White carriage passed them a few turned their faces away, while
others nodded hesitatingly, and one, bolder than the rest, called out,
“Hello, Judge, I congratulate you. Yes, I do. The old bank stood fire
well.”

The judge neither looked at the men, nor answered the salutation, but
his face was like a thunder cloud as he muttered to himself, “Go to the
d—— with your congratulations. Nobody wants them.”

Fred Lansing, on the contrary, touched his hat, and his example was
followed by Herbert, who, however, felt more like fighting than being
civil to the men who had made them so much trouble. When Mr. Grey’s gate
was reached both Fred and Herbert accompanied Louie to the house, one on
either side of her, and each with a hand on her arm as if she needed
support.

“I trust your fatigue will not prevent you from coming to-night. You
will be the star of the evening,” Fred said, as they reached the door.

Louie looked at him half bewildered at first; then she replied:

“Oh, no, we have sent our regrets. Didn’t you know it? I shall not be
there.”

“Not be there!” Fred repeated, feeling that the party, for which he did
not particularly care, would lose all interest for him if this girl, to
whom he had never spoken until this morning, were not there.

There was no time for further remark or expostulation, for Mrs. Grey had
come to meet her daughter, whose long absence had made her very anxious,
and whom she took at once into the house, asking in much concern what
had happened and why her dress was so wet.

Herbert tried to explain, but he was too much excited and fatigued
himself to make it very clear, and as his father was growing impatient,
he said good-by, and with Fred returned to the carriage, which was
driven rapidly away.




                              CHAPTER VII
                               THE JUDGE


Lunch had waited a long time at the White’s, where the ladies were in a
state of great anxiety, which deepened into alarm, as no attention was
paid to the message sent to the bank, asking how matters were
progressing. Mrs. White had heard of the run from Mrs. Lansing and Miss
Percy, without much emotion. It seemed absurd that such a thing could
happen to them.

“It can’t amount to much. The judge will soon stop it. There must be
money enough to meet every claim,” she said, and turned her attention to
the upheaval in her house, where workmen of different kinds were
constantly consulting her.

Lunch was ready promptly at twelve, but before that they had ‘phoned to
the bank twice in quick succession. The first time there was no
response. The second time the judge’s voice came back like a fog horn:

“Quit telephoning. Nobody can pay attention in this infernal racket.
There’s the very old boy to pay!”

Alarmed now and almost hysterical, Mrs. White sent a boy to the scene of
action, and as he did not at once return, she sent another, with
injunctions to come back immediately, which he did with the news that
the run was over and things quieting down, but there had been a great
row and the street was full of people. Then a third message was sent to
the judge to hurry, as lunch was waiting.

At the bank the judge had thought himself hungry, and during the drive
he had sat up straight and proud, holding his head high, not deigning to
look at anyone, but the moment he reached home he collapsed entirely,
and it was a very crushed and trembling man who crept up to his room,
and, lying down upon the couch, said to his wife with quivering lips and
a shaky voice:

“Cover me up, Susan. I’m cold, and don’t speak to me of victuals. My
stomach is all in a broil, and my head feels as if it was full of
bumble-bees. I’ve had an awful time! Yes, an awful time!”

He was almost crying, and held his wife’s hand tightly while in broken
sentences he tried to tell her what he had been through.

He seemed perfectly humiliated, and could not realize why he should have
been thus maltreated. He, Judge White, with a pedigree going back to
William the Conqueror, had been set on by dogs who had run on his bank!
His bank! The White Bank! The First National Bank, of whose stability he
had been so proud; and worse even than this, if anything could be worse,
he had heard himself called “Old Money Bags” and derided with groans and
caterwaulings from boys; and men, too, he believed, had joined in the
howls, he could still hear as he lay upon his couch with his hands to
his ears. He could see, too, with closed eyes the scowling faces which
had looked up at him when he stood upon the balcony, trying to bring
order out of confusion, and the threatening face which had looked in at
him from the window. It was dreadful, and the proud man writhed under
his load of mortification, made worse by the fact that his friends in
Worcester and Springfield, who were coming to the party, would hear of
it, and naturally have a little less faith in his solidity as a banker.
How he wished they were not coming; and that the party was in perdition;
and he consigned his wife there with it, when she tried to make him take
something to eat, saying he would not be able to appear in the evening
if he kept on in this way.

He didn’t much think he should appear in the evening, to be talked to
and sympathized with by people who, all the time, were wondering if his
bank were safe.

“Go away about your business,” he said at last, crossly, “and shut the
door to keep out that confounded clatter which makes me think of the
noise the mob made when they came tearing in—Nancy Sharp with the rest.
Think of that? Nancy Sharp! Didn’t I give her half a ton of coal that
winter she had the rheumatism, and hasn’t she cleaned the floor and
windows of the bank every month for the last year, and wasn’t she among
the first to stretch her great red, soapy arm for her ‘twenty silver
dollars?’ Must have silver, as if we had kept her dirty money intact,
and didn’t she say to the cashier, as she turned to go out, ‘I kinder
pity the poor old man after all,’ meaning me! Susan, me! and I not yet
sixty! I wonder I’m alive. Yes, I do. A run on my bank! If it had been
Grey’s nobody would have wondered, but mine—mine! The First National!
and _me_, pitied by Nancy Sharp and called a poor old man! _Me_! Susan,
_me_!”

The poor old man was wounded in more points than one. He had held
himself so high, and in his foolishness had taken the people’s deference
to him as real, and had believed himself as popular as he was rich, and
in a moment the cobweb film had been torn away, and he saw himself as he
really was in the estimation of the people. “And I am not as nice a man
as Grey,” he thought bitterly, as he reviewed the events of the morning,
and wondered again and again how it happened. “That was a plucky girl,”
he said to himself, thinking of Louie, “and I can’t say but what Grey
acted a friend’s part; but I believe there was something behind it. He
had some axe to grind, and what he did was perfectly safe so long as the
money did not come from him, but was just what we’d paid out.”

When lunch was over, Fred Lansing came in to see the judge, and
succeeded in soothing him somewhat, telling him that his bank was not
the first on which there had been a run, nor the first to be helped
through in the way he had been; and that the fact it had stood the run
would insure it greater prestige in the future. Then he spoke of Louie,
and said: “I am sorry she is not to be here to-night. I think she ought
to come. Everybody will want to see her.”

“Wasn’t invited,” the judge said quickly, his old feeling against the
Greys beginning to return upon him, now that Richard was somewhat
himself again.

“Oh, yes she was. I saw the invitation myself,” Fred answered. “They
have sent their regrets. Miss Grey told me so.”

“Knew they wasn’t wanted, and showed their good sense in declining,” the
judge answered gruffly, while Fred looked at him in surprise.

“Not wanted! What is the matter with the Greys?” he asked, and the judge
replied, “Prejudice, I suppose; all prejudice, most likely; but I don’t
like the man, and never have.”

“Do you know anything against him?” Fred asked.

“Not a blessed thing, for sure. It’s all a surmise that there is
something behind that smooth tongue and manner of his which takes the
crowd. Nobody knows what he was before he came here, so poor that he
lived in one of my tenements in White’s Row—cheapest place in town,
where Nancy Sharp lives. Think of it!” and the judge looked at Fred as
if White’s Row, and the tenement house and Nancy Sharp would settle the
matter.

But Fred did not seem at all disconcerted. He was seeing all the time
the face which had rested on his arm and the light in the beautiful eyes
when they first opened and looked up at him.

“Nobody knows where the fellow got his money, so sudden, to start a bank
with,” the judge went on. “Poor as Job’s turkey when he came here;
clerked a little while in a grocery, I believe. Susan didn’t call on
’em. Then he went west, and after being away a spell came back rich
enough to open a bank and build a fine house with a five hundred dollar
piano and things to match, they say. I’ve never been inside, nor Susan
either. Somehow or other a breath of something did get here about him,
and I shall always believe him a gambler, though he did do the fair
thing to-day, that’s a fact.”

The word gambler had a bad sound to Fred, for it recalled the dead face
of one of his dearest friends, who, after a night’s debauch in some
gambling den in the West, had taken his own life. But Mr. Grey was not
proven to be a gambler because Judge White surmised it, and certainly
Louie was not one, and, he said:

“The young lady is not to blame for what her father may be, and I wish
very much for her to be here to-night, and so does my mother and Blanche
and Herbert.”

At the mention of his son’s name the judge frowned gloomily.

“That’s it,” he said. “Herbert is daft on that girl. That is the
trouble, and if she came this evening he wouldn’t see another blessed
woman here.”

“I don’t think him so far gone as that,” Fred answered, laughingly.
“I’ll take her off his hands part of the time; and I wish Aunt Susan
would send a note asking her to reconsider her regret. I’ll take the
note myself, if there is no one else at leisure to do it.”

Fred was getting quite in earnest, with the result that his uncle
finally said:

“Don’t bother Susan. Her hands are full now and she don’t know what
she’s about or whether she is on her head or her feet. I’ll write a line
or two, myself.”

Going to his desk, he sat down and wrote.


“MISS GREY: We want you to come to-night, even if you have regretted. I
hope you will not disappoint us.

                                                  “Yours,
                                                          “JUDGE WHITE.”


“That’ll fetch her,” he said, passing the note to Fred, with a feeling
that he had only to express his wish, for her to comply at once. “Isn’t
it right?” he asked, as he saw Fred looking at the note doubtfully.

“Why, yes—so far as it goes,” Fred answered; “but ought you not to have
included Mr. and Mrs. Grey?”

“Oh, thunderation, maybe so! Give it back,” the judge replied, taking
the note and adding as a P. S.: “Bring your father and mother, of
course.”

“I don’t know what Susan will say when the three walk in. She didn’t
s’pose they were invited. She don’t fancy ’em any more than I do,” he
said; but Fred didn’t hear him.

He was half way down the stairs with the note, which seemed to him
almost an insult, it was so crisp and short. But if any one could smooth
it over, he could, and he meant to do it. He did not care a picayune
whether Mr. and Mrs. Grey accepted or not. He wanted Louie, and he meant
to have her, and he wouldn’t tell Herbert where he was going, for fear
he would insist upon going himself. “I’ll tell him afterwards that I was
doing him a favor and giving him a surprise,” he thought, as he walked
rapidly in the direction of Mr. Grey’s house.




                              CHAPTER VIII
                             LOUIE AND FRED


Louie was very tired, and after telling her mother what had taken place
at the bank, she went to bed, for her head was aching slightly and she
wished, if possible, to forget the exciting scene through which she had
passed. A quiet sleep, followed by a bath, refreshed her, and in a
pretty white wrapper she was sitting at the end of the piazza, covered
with woodbine, which sheltered it from the sun. Her eyes were closed,
and she was nearly asleep again when Fred’s step, coming rapidly up the
walk and on to the piazza, roused her. Before he touched the bell he saw
her and went toward her, offering his hand and hoping she was not
suffering any bad effects from her efforts of the morning.

“Only tired, that’s all,” she said, feeling chagrined at being caught by
Fred Lansing _en deshabille_, as she fancied her loose wrapper to be.

She did not guess how the young man was admiring her in it, and thinking
it the most becoming dress she could have worn, with its flowing
sleeves, which showed her arms every time she moved them.

Bringing a chair to her side, he told her why he had come, giving her
the judge’s note, and drawing a good deal upon his imagination as he
dwelt upon the pleasure it would give them all to have her present. Mrs.
White, he said, was very busy; and the judge had written for her—a
little formal, to be sure, but she knew the judge and would make
allowance. He was very grateful, very, for what she had done, or been
the means of doing. They were all very grateful and wanted to see her
and thank her personally. The party would not be a success unless she
were present. They would send the carriage for her, and send her home.

This last was said as he fancied he saw in her signs of declining, and
it did not occur to him that it sounded as if she alone were expected to
go. She understood it, however, and believed the P. S. an afterthought,
and resented it. Her father and mother were not wanted, and for a moment
she resolved not to go. But something in Fred Lansing’s eyes and the
tone of his voice, as he talked to her, won upon her and made her change
her mind.

“I must ask mother,” she said at last; and just then her mother
appeared, a good deal surprised at the sight of this elegant young man
sitting close to her daughter, with his hand on the arm of her chair.

She had seen Fred in the morning, when Louie was brought home, and bowed
pleasantly to him now, while wondering what his errand could be. Louie
told her and gave her the judge’s note, while Fred again began to
apologize and explain why his aunt did not write it, and said he hoped
Mrs. Grey would waive every consideration and accept. They must have
Louie. The party without her would be like a play with the star actor
left out.

Mrs. Grey was very polite, but very firm in declining for herself, but
said at last, that Louie could go if she liked and her father approved,
and that probably Mr. Grey might accompany her. She couldn’t tell until
she saw him.

The brightening of Fred’s face and the assurance with which he assumed
that Louie would go, and asked what time the carriage should call for
her, was conclusive proof that it was Louie alone who was specially
wanted. Mrs. Grey understood, and smiled at the enthusiasm of the young
man whose magnetism she felt, as did everyone with whom he came in
contact.

For half an hour or more he stayed, talking to Louie of the events of
the morning, which she would have liked to forget. It seemed to her like
some horrid dream rather than a reality, and she would gladly have shut
from her mind, the memory of some of the faces of which she had a
glimpse, and to have forgotten the hum of angry, excited voices which
she had heard as she passed from one bank to the other.

“What if it had happened to father?” she had often asked herself, with a
feeling that it would have been ruin to him, for the National Bank would
never have helped him out.

As it was, he had profited by the run, for thousands of dollars were
deposited with him which had been drawn from the other bank. She did not
understand the business very well, but she had fancied a certain
exultation in her father’s manner after all was over which she did not
quite like, and which she knew he was trying to conceal. There was no
trace of it when he came home, an hour or so after Fred’s departure. On
the contrary, he seemed rather depressed, and when told of the second
invitation for the evening, answered quickly:

“Nothing could tempt me to go. I have had all of Judge White’s society I
care to have. I wonder how many times he will tell his guests that his
bank could have stood the pressure without help. Stood! It would have
gone down in a crash. Couldn’t have helped it. No small bank could have
stood against that mob. It nearly took the life out of me. I feel more
like going to bed than to a party.”

He did not, however, object to Louie’s going, if she liked; but
regretted that he had not a carriage of his own in which to send her.

“I mean to have one very soon,” he said; his spirits beginning to rise
as he talked of the handsome turn-out which had been offered him, and
which now, with the increase of funds in his bank, was made possible for
his means.

“But, father,” Louie said, “you can’t take that money—Mr. Sheldon’s, for
instance—and use it for yourself, can you? I supposed it was given you
in trust.”

“Certainly,” Mr. Grey replied, his usually pale face flushing a little.
“It is in trust, but I can loan it out on good interest, which will be
mine. You don’t suppose, do you, as some of those loggerheads seemed to
think, that their money lies in the vault untouched and ready to be
called for at any moment, even to the identical bills or silver, like
Nancy Sharp’s?”

Louie confessed herself rather hazy with regard to banking affairs, and
only answered that she hoped there would never be a run on her father’s
bank.

“It will be teetotal failure when it comes, and not a run,” her father
answered, while a shadow passed over his face and he seemed to be
thinking of something far away from his surroundings.

Meanwhile Louie was wondering what she should wear.

“If I had accepted in the first place I could have had a new dress. Now,
I must go in an old one,” she thought; her choice falling at last upon a
simple white muslin, with knots of crimson ribbon, very becoming to her
style of beauty. At least Fred Lansing thought so when about half-past
eight he came himself, faultlessly attired in his evening dress and
bringing a cluster of hot-house roses for Louie.

“Oh, awfully sorry you are not going,” he said to Mr. Grey, while
waiting for Louie, “and—er—well, you see, I was not quite sure about
your going, and so I came myself as a chaperone. I did suggest to Miss
Percy that she come—that is my father’s ward, you know—Blanche Percy—but
she couldn’t, and so I came,” he added in an explanatory way, as he saw
an expression, he could not understand, pass over Mr. Grey’s face at the
mention of Miss Percy.

In the excitement at the bank, after the run was over, Fred had not
observed Mr. Grey particularly, but now, as he sat talking with him, he
began at once to feel the charm of his manner and personality.

“He may have been a gambler or a highwayman for aught I know, but he is
every whit a gentleman,” he thought, and involuntarily contrasted him
with the pompous judge, of whom he felt a little ashamed, and for whom
he felt he must apologize. “My uncle is greatly upset by the humility
put upon him,” he said, “and is not himself at all. He is, of course,
deeply grateful to you, although his manner is rather unfortunate. But
you know him well and can understand how terribly he was hurt.”

With a wave of his hand Mr. Grey silenced Fred, and replied, “Don’t
speak of it, please. I have lived by the side of the judge four years. I
know him and his peculiarities, which only amuse me. I was glad to help
him, but should not have thought of that way except for Louie. Oh, here
she comes,” and he turned towards the door where Louie stood with her
white evening cloak on her arm.

“Ready, I see,” Fred said, springing up and putting her cloak around her
and pulling the hood over her head, for the night had set in a little
chilly.

“You are looking charming,” he said, as she lifted her eyes and thanked
him.

“Oh, no,” she answered gayly. “I have only my old gown to wear; but it
does not matter. Nobody will look at me, among all those young ladies
from Worcester and Springfield. They say the hotel is filled with them.
Cynthia, our maid, saw several carriage loads coming from the station.”

Fred gave a little shrug as he replied: “I have not seen them yet, but
you need have no fears of eclipse.”

It was strange, how he, who was usually so grave and dignified, unbent
to this little girl, whose fan and flowers he held as he escorted her to
the carriage, which was driven rapidly away.

The White house stood at a little distance from the street, and the
avenue leading to it was lined with lanterns suspended from the trees,
whose branches met in graceful arches here and there across the road.
Overhead the summer moon was sailing through a rift of feathery clouds,
which broke occasionally and left the grounds flooded with light. Nearer
the house there was a soft plash of water falling into the deep basins
of the fountains, and the odors of many flowers—roses, hundreds of
them—trained on trellises and twining around the Corinthian pillars of
the handsome, stately house. From every window lights were gleaming, and
before some of them in the upper rooms, airy forms were flitting,
showing where the guests were laying aside their wraps before descending
to the drawingroom, where the judge stood, in all the pride and dignity
befitting a man, with a William the Conqueror pedigree behind him.

He had felt a little abashed when he met the first of his city friends,
but their congratulations upon the solidity of his bank and the firmness
with which it had withstood the attack, reassured him, until he began to
look upon himself as a man of more consequence than he had been before,
inasmuch as he had been a kind of martyr and had passed unscathed
through the fire. The scowling faces of the crowds, the jeers of the
boys, calling him old Money Bags, and Nancy Sharp’s sympathy for the
poor old man, were for the time forgotten. He was himself again—proud,
conceited, arrogant and showing it in every expression of his face as he
received his guests.

Louie’s story had somehow been circulated among the strangers who had
arrived, and great was the curiosity to see her. Herbert had, with his
father, heard with some surprise Fred’s assertion that he was going for
her in the brougham, taking it for granted that every carriage in the
White stable was at her disposal. Such heroic conduct as hers could not
be too highly appreciated, Fred thought, and was a little disgusted with
his uncle’s reply:

“Why, yes; take the carriage if she isn’t able to walk. I wonder her
father hasn’t set up a turn-out by this time. He will soon, you’ll see.
He has a lot of fresh depositors in his bank. Five thousand from Godfrey
Sheldon, who very likely will come sneaking back, but I shall tell him
better stay where he is. Yes, sir! I don’t ask no odds of him.”

This answer would have decided Fred to go for Louie himself, if he had
not already made up his mind to do so. If attention from him could repay
her in part, she should have it. It was not difficult, either, to be
attentive to her. She was so pretty, with the white hood on her head and
the eager light of expected enjoyment in her bright eyes, that he found
himself wishing the drive from the Greys’ to the Whites’ longer than it
was, and was not sorry when they found the avenue blocked with
carriages. With the exception of the Greys, not many had sent regrets,
either from Springfield or Worcester, or the adjoining towns, or
Merivale. Of those invited in the latter place, a few had been so
fearful of losing their money that they had demanded it with the rest,
and now were repenting their haste. To face Judge White so soon was not
to be thought of, and they stayed at home, but were scarcely missed in
the crowd which, as early as eight, began filling the house. From
Springfield a private car had been chartered, bringing fifty or more,
and it was the carriages taking these from the station which were
keeping the White carriage back.

“There will be a great crush; here’s a regular block, such as is
sometimes seen at the White House in Washington,” Fred said. “I hope you
do not mind the waiting?”

“Not in the least. Do you?” Louie replied.

“Indeed, I don’t. I’d rather be here, where it is cool, than in rooms as
hot as those must be, with all the people, to say nothing of the gas,”
Fred answered, leaning back in the carriage, with a feeling that he
could stay there for hours watching Louie’s face, on which the lights of
the lanterns and the moonbeams fell, bringing out every point of beauty
and making it very fair and sweet.

Fred Lansing, as a rule, did not care particularly for women—that is, he
did not care for any particular woman. He knew that if he chose he could
have his choice among the best of his acquaintances, and possibly this
was a reason why he had no choice. He did not like to feel that every
girl he talked with was thinking of him as a possible husband, and that
every mother to whom he was polite was hoping he might be her
son-in-law. As Fred Lansing, with a large fortune already at his
disposal, and a larger one when his mother died, and as the scion of one
of the oldest and best families in the South on his father’s side, to
say nothing of the White pedigree on his mother’s side, he was not
insensible to his value as a desirable _parti_, but he never presumed
upon it. To be a man whom every one could respect, independent of his
money or position, was his object, and if he at times seemed cold and
reserved, it was not from pride or a sense of his superiority, but
rather from indifference, if not from contempt for the deference
amounting sometimes to toadyism, paid to him because he was Fred
Lansing. Louie had not seemed at all overawed or impressed, even when
she found herself in his arms on her return to consciousness in the
bank. She had only turned her face away with a flush, as a timid child
might have done if caught in some questionable act, and had said: “Oh, I
didn’t mean it! I am sorry.”

Some girls whom he knew would have affected a vast amount of modesty and
self-consciousness, but Louie was sensible, and he didn’t believe she
thought half as much of lying in his arms as he had of having her there.
He could feel the pressure of her small head yet, with its mass of
crumpled hair, and see the death-white face, which had looked so
pathetic in its unconsciousness, and which, had he been of a different
temperament, he might have wanted to kiss. As it was, he had had no
thought of it. In her helplessness she was sacred in his eyes; and even
now, when she sat beside him in the moonlight, her eyes as bright as the
stars overhead and her face glowing with excitement, he did not know
that there was any thought of love in his mind. He only felt that she
attracted him as no other girl had ever done. She was so natural and
innocent, and so filled with anticipation of what was in store for her
if they ever reached the house. Near it a large platform had been
erected for the band, which, when the White carriage came up, had just
struck up a lively strain, to which Louie kept time with her head and
feet and hands.

“Oh, I could dance till morning and not feel tired a bit,” she said. “I
like it so much, and I hope somebody will ask me.”

Fred was not very fond of dancing; it was too hard work, he thought, and
he was prudish enough not to fancy the way some girls had of “making a
pillow out of a fellow’s arm or bosom,” as he had expressed it to some
of his acquaintances who had rallied him for refusing to join in a
waltz, and who enjoyed being made pillows for the heads of their fair
partners. Now, however, he suddenly changed his mind. He wanted to
dance, and be not only a pillow, but bolster, too, if necessary; and to
what seemed like a challenge, although he knew it was not meant for
that, he responded at once.

“I will ask you now. What shall it be—round or square, or both?”

“Oh, the two-step, if you know it,” she answered, with a laugh. “I could
dance that forever. If you don’t like that, the lancers.”

“We’ll have both,” Fred said, with a shiver, as he knew he might not be
able to acquit himself creditably in the two-step, which he had never
tried but once, and had then failed miserably. “But she will keep me
going,” he thought, as he lifted her from the carriage and led her into
the house.




                               CHAPTER IX
                               THE PARTY


The most of the guests had arrived by this time, and the dressing-room
was full when Louie entered it. Nearly all were strangers from out of
town, and few paid any attention to her. Those who did glance at her saw
a very pretty girl, whose bright face and eyes made them wonder who she
was.

In the midst of silks and satins and laces and diamonds and city-made
toilets, Louie felt herself quite out of place, and was beginning to
wish she had not come or could see some one she knew, when among the men
in the room opposite she caught sight of Fred near the door, and felt
sure he was waiting for her. Not till then had she realized how awkward
it would be to go down to the drawingroom alone, and she felt a thrill
of gratitude that she was not to be subjected to this ordeal. This
gratitude was augmented with something like pride when she heard one of
the city girls say in a low voice:

“There’s Mr. Lansing talking to Rob. I wonder if he can be waiting for
any one.”

Instantly a dozen heads were turned in the direction where Fred stood,
his fine face in profile, with a look upon it which most people called
pride, but which really arose from his indifference to what was passing
around him, and a half feeling of boredom that he was obliged to be a
part of it.

“Oh, is that Mr. Lansing?” “Isn’t he handsome?” “Isn’t he
proud-looking?” “I hope I shall be introduced.” “They say he has two or
three millions, and is the greatest catch in Washington, but does not
care a straw for ladies.”

These and similar remarks Louie heard, and then, being human, she
accelerated her movements a little, gave another look at her hair,
fastened her own gloves, as she saw there was no prospect of immediate
help from the two maids in attendance, and walked into the hall, where
the gentlemen, who were now filling it, stood back as she came,
wondering who was to claim this dainty bit of white muslin, brilliant
color, and beautiful eyes, which flashed on them for an instant and were
then cast down.

They did not have long to wait, for at sight of her all Fred’s
indifference vanished, and, stepping forward, he said:

“Oh, here you are. I was waiting for you. Shall we go down?”

He offered her his arm, and the two descended the stairs, while the men
looked curiously at each other, and some of the ladies from the
dressing-room came and leaned over the stair railing for a better sight
of the young girl who had suddenly acquired a new interest for them, and
must be somebody, possibly a visitor, they thought. At all events Mr.
Lansing seemed to know her well.

In the large drawingroom the receiving party were standing, Judge and
Mrs. White, Mrs. Lansing, Blanche Percy, and Herbert, the latter of whom
was very impatient for Louie to arrive. His impatience was in a measure
shared by Miss Percy, who had evinced a great interest in the young girl
and a desire to meet her.

“I am so glad she is coming,” she said. “I hoped she might be early so I
could talk with her before the rooms are filled.”

“She ought to be here. Fred went for her more than an hour ago. It can’t
be she has changed her mind and is not coming after all,” Herbert
replied, going into the hall once or twice and looking from the door for
a sight of his father’s carriage. “There she is at last,” he said, going
forward to meet her as she came in, and running his eye rapidly over her
from her head to her feet, with a feeling that she was on exhibition,
and he wanted her to pass muster with the city girls present in so large
numbers. She was not dressed like them, he knew, and he at first felt a
little pang of disappointment at the plainness of her attire, but
Blanche Percy’s exclamation, “What a lovely face!” reassured him, and he
felt very proud as he presented her to his mother, saying, “Mother, this
is Louie—Miss Grey—the girl who saved our bank.”

Mrs. White had seen Louie many times, and had once had her to tea when
she invited the choir and teachers in the Sunday school, as a matter of
duty. She knew Herbert’s partiality for her, and had felt annoyed by it;
but she was very gracious now, and kept Louie’s hand in hers, while she
expressed her gratitude, and then passed her on to the judge, who was
rather more demonstrative, although there was in his manner an air of
superiority and patronage which Louie felt and resented. She did not
like the judge, and she held her head high while she said she was glad
if she had been of service, and had only done what she should wish a
friend to do for her father if he were in a similar strait.

“Not a strait,” the judge said, a little testily. “That means a tight
place; and I believe in my soul we should have pulled through somehow
without any help; but I thank you just the same.”

With the trouble over and in the past, he was not as grateful as he had
been at first, and it annoyed him that he had been beholden to Tom Grey
of all other men. But he could not help himself. He had been helped, and
the girl instrumental in helping him was there, and being made much of
by Fred and Mrs. Lansing and Blanche Percy, the last of whom could
hardly wait to tell her what she thought of her heroism. There was
something about Louie which fascinated Miss Percy—a feeling that she had
known her always, or that there was a tie between them of some kind,
which would have drawn her to the girl if there had been no bank episode
in the morning. She could not, however, keep her long to herself, for
the people from upstairs were coming down and filling the space around
the receiving party.

Fred had now taken his place at a point where he could easily receive or
stand aloof, as he chose. He preferred the latter, for meeting strangers
was not to his taste. He had had a surfeit of it in Washington, and
would far rather be a spectator and watch the different guests as they
came. Then his mind was considerably distracted with thoughts of a white
muslin gown, with baby waist and red ribbons, and a pair of brown eyes
which had looked at him just as no other eyes had ever looked, with no
shade of coquetry in them, or sign of elation because of notice from
him. He saw the muslin gown and red ribbons at last in the distance near
the piazza, and when the dancing commenced he saw one or two young men
making their way toward it and knew they were asking Louie for the
dance.

Herbert saw it, too, and leaving Blanche Percy, he went to the dancing
room and waited while Louie was whirled around by a Merivale boy, who
knew no more of time than a cow, Herbert said to Fred, who was standing
beside him, watching the pair.

“Is knowledge of time necessary to a good dancer?” Fred asked.

“Certainly,” Herbert replied. “Otherwise you bob around like a cork in
hot water and make yourself ridiculous, besides jerking your partner
awfully. Look at Jim Carter, will you, holding Louie’s arm up like a
pump-handle and hopping like a toad. Louie is splendid, give her half a
chance, but what can she do with such a clown? Look at his knees bent
nearly double!”

Herbert was pretty severe in his criticisms on Jim Carter’s waltzing,
while Fred laughed and said, “I am afraid I shall bob like a cork and
hop like a toad with my knees bent, for I have no idea of time.”

Herbert, who knew his cousin’s habits pretty well, rejoined in some
surprise:

“Are you going to dance? I thought you detested it.”

“Of course I am going to, and I have already engaged Miss Grey for the
lancers and the two-step. I am waiting for her now,” was Fred’s answer;
and, as just then Louie was led to a seat near him, he pushed past
Herbert to her side and said, “Shall we try it next time, and what is
it? Oh, I see—a two-step. I am not very good at that, and shall depend
on you to keep me going.”

Louie looked at him a moment with a troubled expression on her face, and
when he continued “You remember you promised me,” she said. “Yes, I
know; but, Mr. Lansing, I have been thinking about it, and it seems to
me I made you ask me by my foolish remark that I hoped somebody would.
You couldn’t very well help it after that, you know, and I release you
from all obligations to me. I have danced once, and am promised to Will
Travers and one or two more, and shall do very well if I stand the rest
of the evening. There are so many city girls here for you.”

“Bother the city girls,” Fred thought; but, he said, “I have no
intention to be released, although you may wish I had before we get
through with it, for I have no more idea of time than a cow, as Herb
said of your late partner.”

“That’s so; he didn’t have much time in him, and he jerked me around
terribly. I hope he won’t ask me again. He will, though; he always does,
when we are where they dance. I guess I can manage you if you really
like to try,” Louie answered with a laugh. “It is very simple when you
once get into it.”

With a long breath, and a hope that he should not fall down, or step on
some one’s dress, Fred was soon struggling with the two-step, of which
he knew very little; but Louie kept him going, and infused so much of
her own enjoyment of the dance into him that he began to like it
himself, provided always that Louie could be his partner.

Emboldened by his success, he tried a spirited waltz with her, in which
she neither made of him a pillow nor a bolster; and he did not quite
believe he bobbed like a cork, although he saw Herbert’s eyes fixed
disapprovingly upon him whenever he passed near him, and felt sure he
was not acquitting himself very creditably. Louie told him he did
splendidly, and promised one or two more dances beside the lancers.

“Now, go and ask some of the other young ladies. They are all waiting
for you, I know,” she said.

But Fred shook his head. He was tired with the exertion he had made. He
was beginning to sweat. He had had enough dancing unless Louie were his
partner, and handing her over to his successor he went out for a breath
of cool air, but came back very soon and watched the white muslin dress
and red ribbons as they floated up and down the broad piazza, while
Louie’s face told how she was enjoying it all.

“She is airy and graceful as a bird, and by far the best dancer here, if
I am any judge,” he thought, and was glad that she had no lack of
partners.

Every young man who did not know her asked to be presented, and invited
her to dance, until she had a surfeit of it and began to feel tired, and
was glad when Herbert came to her with a request from Miss Percy that
she would sing something for those who did not dance.

“I have told Blanche about your voice, and she is anxious to hear it,”
he said.

Louie was nearly as ready to sing as to dance, and her voice had that
bird-like quality which too much training sometimes spoils by taking
away its naturalness. All her life she had been in the habit of
imitating the birds, succeeding so well that it was sometimes difficult
to tell whether it were herself trilling the roundelay or the robin,
sitting on a high branch of a tree, with his head bent in a listening
attitude as if trying to decide whether the sounds he heard were human
or came from some new-comer in the field. She had had several months of
instruction in vocal music, but her best teachers had been the birds,
and especially her canary, whose notes she imitated so closely that he
often stopped in his song for an instant, and then, as if reassured,
began again with her, the two voices blending together without a discord
on her part, so accurately did she follow him. One song, whose music she
had changed to suit her voice, she called her bird-song, as it gave
scope to her especial talent, and ended with a medley of sounds—the
twitter of the sparrow, the robin’s whistle, the oriole’s notes, and the
tones of her canary when in its happiest mood.

“Give us the bird-song, by all means,” Herbert said, when she asked what
she should sing, and in a moment Louie was standing in the music-room,
facing as large an audience as she had left in the dancing-hall.

They were mostly elderly people from the city, who, tired of watching
the dancers, were glad of any new diversion, although a few yawned
behind their fans when told that the girl in white muslin, who stood by
the piano, was to sing for them.

The Worcester people, who were accustomed to hear the finest singers,
and looked upon their city as the head centre for all that was best in
music, wondered what this little country girl could do in that line to
interest them. It would probably be some simple ditty, sung either in a
nasal or loud, harsh strain, with contortions of the body; but they were
well bred, and must listen and affect to be pleased.

Some were still talking in low tones when Louie struck a few notes upon
the piano and began, quietly, without contortions of body or face, and
without any apparent effort, except that the cords of her throat
expanded and stood out full and round, when, in the chorus, her voice
rose higher and clearer and was more and more like a bird’s, or many
birds’, making some of the audience look around to see if a stray robin
or canary had not alighted near them and was joining in the song. The
music-room was so far from the dancing-room that one did not interfere
with the other, but not so far that the clear, ringing notes were not
heard by the dancers above the sounds of violin and horn; and, before
she was through, half of those not dancing were crowding around the
music-room to catch a sight of the singer.

“It’s the girl who saved the bank. She must be a marvel,” they said, as
they saw her bowing in acknowledgment of the storm of applause which
greeted her when the song was finished.

Among them was Fred Lansing, whose hands were nearly blistered, so loud
and long-continued were his encores as he made his way to the front
until he stood very near to her. He had been persuaded to waltz with a
girl from Boston, who tried to make him a pillow, but he drew back from
her and was so awkward every way besides getting his feet entangled in
her dress that she was quite as glad as he when it was over. He knew
Louie was singing and was impatient to get to her.

“Sing it again. I never heard anything like it,” he said as he at last
reached her side.

“Yes, sing it again,” Miss Percy said, laying a hand on her shoulder.

Louie sang it again, better than at first, it seemed to those who heard
her, and this time she had for her audience the whole party, for the
dancing had ceased, and musicians and all were listening to her. There
were cheers and clapping of hands and bravoes heard on all sides when
she was through, with a call for more. But Louie had done enough. Her
brain was reeling with the vociferous applause, and a pallor was setting
about her mouth, which Miss Percy was quick to see.

“Come with me. You need some fresh air after this,” she said, and taking
Louie’s hand she led her out upon the veranda, where she made her sit
down, while she stood over her and asked, “Where did you learn all
this?”

“From the birds,” Louie answered. “I am always imitating them. I cannot
help it. I began when I was a child, first with the crows and bobolinks
and then with the robins. I liked them best, and I’ve kept on till I
guess I can sing like them all. Did I do well?”

She looked up at Miss Percy, who stooped and kissed her as she replied:

“Do well? I should think you did. Why, every musician and dancer stopped
to listen to you. Do you know, you have a fortune in your voice—hundreds
of dollars a night, perhaps.”

“Oh!” Louie gasped; “I couldn’t do it; it tires me so, and makes my
heart beat so fast when the people cheer—not the singing, but the
cheering. If I were all alone, I could sing on and on forever, but I
could never sing on the stage.”

“Who is talking of the stage for Louie? You, Fred?”

It was Herbert who spoke, and who had come out upon the veranda,
preceded by Fred Lansing.

“I am talking of Miss Grey’s voice,” Miss Percy said. “I told her there
is a fortune in it.”

“But not for the stage. Louie on the stage, with footlights and green
rooms and powder and paint, and all sorts of people! I should not like
it. Ugh!” and Herbert gave a whistle indicative of his opinion of all
sorts of people with powder and paint and footlights. “Would you like to
see her there?” he continued, turning to Fred, who answered:

“I can scarcely imagine it, although I believe she might be a second
Patti.”

“But she won’t—she shan’t! I could never respect a girl who sang on the
stage,” Herbert rejoined, with so much spirit that Louie burst into a
merry laugh and said:

“What are you so excited about? I am not on the stage and never shall
be. I am here on the veranda, and awfully hot and thirsty. I wish you
would bring me some water.”

Both Herbert and Fred started for the water, but Herbert was first, and
Fred returned to Louie and told her what a wonderful voice she had, and
that it ought to be cultivated to the utmost, while Miss Percy said she
could undoubtedly make a great success as a public singer, if
circumstances required.

“Oh, don’t,” Louie answered, closing her eyes wearily. “I have a
presentiment that I may have to sing, and sometimes feel as if I were
living in the future instead of thousands of years ago, as some say we
did, and that I am before the footlights—real footlights—and there are
seas of faces looking at me and thunders of applause, and I hate it all,
but must do it for something, or some one. I wonder who it is?”

She seemed to be talking to herself rather than to Miss Percy and Fred,
both of whom looked curiously at her, while Fred suggested:

“Doing it for fame, perhaps.”

Louie shook her head. “Never for that. Only duty, or love for some one,
could make me do in reality what I have so often done in fancy.”

Herbert had brought her the water by this time, and she drank it
eagerly.

“Now I am all right,” she said, “but think I’d better go home. What time
is it?”

Against this there was a quiet protest from Fred, and a louder one from
Herbert, who resolved to be ahead of his cousin, and said:

“Fred brought you here, but I am to see you home, and must wait till the
people from Springfield and Worcester leave, at twelve o’clock. That is
not late, and I want you for the next dance.”

He looked a little defiantly at Fred, and there was an air of ownership
in his manner as he took her on his arm and went back to the piazza,
where the awnings were now rolled up to admit the cool night air, and
showed nearly as many spectators gathered outside as there were dancers
within.

It was a brilliant scene, with the lanterns and moonlight, and flowers
and music, and gayly dressed people, and Louie was the star around which
everything revolved. There was no lack of partners for her, and except
when she was singing, she danced every set but one, which she sat
through with Herbert, who kept close to her as if she were his
particular property.

Fred had relinquished the field, and only came near her once when she
was sitting with Herbert. There was a sudden lighting up of Louie’s eyes
at sight of him, for she had missed him, and, without knowing why, was
glad to have him near her, although he said nothing except to ask if she
were too tired to give them another song.

“Yes, she is,” Herbert answered for her. “We are to have one dance more
before the thing breaks up, and then I am to take her home. The walk
will do us both good.”

“Walk!” Fred repeated, in some surprise. “Walk, and she so tired?”

Herbert’s countenance fell, but brightened again when Louie rejoined:

“Oh, I’d rather walk; but it is not necessary for you to go with me. The
Adams live next to us. I can go with them.”

“I’d laugh,” was Herbert’s answer, while Fred turned away without a
word, and Louie did not see him again until the party was over and the
carriages taking the city guests to the station were rolling down the
avenue, and the other people were saying good-night.

As the son of the house, Herbert felt obliged to wait until the last
guest was gone, so that it was after twelve o’clock when Louie was
making her adieus, with Herbert at her side, ready to accompany her
home.

“I thought you came in my carriage. Why don’t it take you home?” the
judge asked, not quite pleased that his son should be the escort, on a
half-mile walk, to this girl, who, if she had been instrumental in
saving his bank, was still the daughter of Tom Grey, and far beneath him
in the social scale.

“She prefers to walk, and so do I,” Herbert replied, taking Louie’s arm
and leading her to the door, where they found Fred Lansing.

Offering his hand to Louie, he said: “I hope you will feel no bad
effects from all the excitement and dissipation. If I may, I will call
in the afternoon to inquire how you are. Good-by, and pleasant dreams. I
rather envy you the walk. It is what one needs after hours of heat and
exertion.”

“Why don’t you come, too?” sprang to Louie’s lips, but she repressed it
as something unmaidenly; but her eyes had in them a wistful look as she
raised them to Fred, who did not quite understand the expression, or
know why he stood outside, watching the little figure in the white dress
and cloak until it disappeared among the trees in the avenue.




                               CHAPTER X
                           ON THE GREY PIAZZA


When Herbert left the house for that moonlight walk with Louie, he had
no idea of doing what he finally did do. He felt elated that he had
outwitted Fred, who he was sure had intended seeing Louie home, in the
carriage, most likely, if he did say the walk was what one needed after
so much heat and excitement. He might have added dancing, too, and such
dancing—more like a bear than a man, Herbert thought, and wondered how
Louie liked it.

She was very silent, while he, too, did not care to talk much at first.
He was satisfied to have Louie to himself, away from all the cads who
had dangled after her, and, more than all, away from Fred, who, he
believed, had shown her more attention than he had shown in his life to
all the girls he had known.

What if he should really fall in love with her, and propose? She would
of course accept him. No girl in her right mind would refuse Fred
Lansing. The thought was like wormwood, and he found himself growing
more and more jealous of Fred, who was going to call on Louie that
afternoon, and his jealousy increased her value tenfold. He had always
liked her better than any girl he knew. In fact, she was the only girl
he had ever cared for at all. But, then, his knowledge of girls was
rather limited. Those from the city who had been at the party had about
them a different air from Louie, it was true, but were not half as
pretty and winsome, nor had the whole of them received as much attention
as she had, especially from Fred—confound him! He was never known to
notice a girl before, or scarcely look at one, and he would have
appropriated Louie entirely if he had not interfered and asserted his
rights.

These and similar thoughts ran swiftly through Herbert’s mind. Then they
took another turn. There was some of his father’s nature in him, and he
began to wish she was not Mr. Grey’s daughter. True, neither he nor
anyone knew anything against Mr. Grey, but his father disliked him and
suspected him, and looked down upon him. He had once been their tenant
in White’s Row, where Nancy Sharp lived, and he had heard that Mrs. Grey
had done plain sewing for his mother, and that Louie had helped her. All
this was pretty bad, and Herbert felt himself grow hot as he thought of
taking for his wife a girl who had lived in White’s Row and whose mother
had sewed for his mother.

“But I love her. I couldn’t give her to anyone else, and Fred Lansing is
quite too attentive to her. Such cold-blooded chaps as he go off quick
when they go at all,” he kept saying to himself, and jealousy of Fred
Lansing had a good deal to do with his final decision.

The village clock was striking one when they at last reached the Grey
house. The moon was now a little past the zenith, and pouring a flood of
light over everything. The piazza under the vines, with its rugs and
chairs and table, where Louie kept her books and work when sitting
there, looked very inviting, but Louie made no movement toward it. She
was going into the house, when Herbert said to her:

“Hold on a minute. Let’s sit here a while and talk. There’s a lot I want
to say to you, and the night is too fine to go indoors.”

He led her to a chair at the end of the piazza, where she sat down, and,
leaning back in a reclining position, said:

“I shall not stay here long, for I am half asleep and dead tired, so say
what you have to say, quickly, and excuse me if I shut my eyes, my lids
are so heavy. Don’t be too long and prosy. What is it? Nothing about
that bank affair, I hope. I am sick and tired hearing of it.”

Herbert would rather have looked into Louie’s eyes, which always
inspired him, but he made no protest against her closing them, and
thought how lovely she was with her long, dark lashes, resting on her
cheeks and the light which came in patches through the vines making her
face like a piece of marble. He wanted to kiss her, but the time had not
come yet. She was queer about some things, and would resent it unless he
had a right, which he meant to have before he left her.

It was a little difficult to begin, and he was not quite sure whether he
wanted to commit himself or not, but after sitting a few moments in
silence, watching her and gloating over her beauty, which was sure to be
his own if he chose, he put his hand on hers, which lay on the arm of
the chair. She did not move or try to take it away, and, emboldened by
this, he bent down and whispered:

“Louie, I love you.”

There was no sign that she heard, but of course she did, and he went on
to say, that he had loved her ever since she was a little girl and
chased him up the tree, when he was about to rob a bird’s nest. It was a
boy’s love then, but now that he was nearly twenty, it was a man’s love
he offered her. He laid great emphasis on the “man,” and told her that
he wanted to be engaged—not openly at first, because his father (he
called him the governor) had some unreasonable prejudices which must be
overcome.

“Thinks the Queen’s daughter none too high up for me; but a fellow
marries for himself and not for his father,” he said, adding that he was
going to college in the autumn and it would be four years before he
could be graduated. By that time she would be nearly twenty-one and he
twenty-four, and old enough to act for himself, independent of his
father; in the meantime it would be just as well not to announce the
engagement. It would save him some unpleasantness, and her, too; as his
father would be very uncivil to her, and his mother was nearly as proud
as his father, and would be influenced by him—not because Mr. Grey had
not always been as well off as he was now, but—er— Herbert hesitated,
feeling that he could not speak of his father’s suspicions of Mr. Grey.
He had done so once and Louie had nearly torn his eyes out. He could not
risk it again, especially after all the Grey Bank had done for them. So
he continued to speak of the necessity for secrecy. She would be sure of
him and he sure of her. Of course, she would not allow attentions from
anyone, no matter who he was. There were plenty of cads who would like
to hang round her, but as his promised wife she must keep them at a
distance, even if Fred Lansing were of the number, as he might be. He
had seemed a good deal impressed at the party, but he was not a marrying
man—was as cold as marble—a terrible iceberg where women were concerned,
and his attentions would mean no more than that he was pleased for the
time.

Having had his fling at Fred, Herbert waited for some sign of assent to
what he had said. But there was none. Louie still lay with her eyes
closed, and perfectly motionless. Nothing had moved her, neither his
words of love nor the honor he felt he was conferring upon her, nor what
he had said of her father’s not having always been as rich as he was
now. She was breathing very regularly, and something in the sound made
him bend close to her with a suspicion of the truth.

“Louie,” he said. “Louie, do you hear me?”

There was no answer, and, starting up, he exclaimed, not in a whisper,
but aloud, as he grasped her shoulder, and shook her:

“Thunderation! I believe you are asleep.”

That roused her, and, opening her eyes, she stared at him for a moment
vacantly, as if wondering why he was there. Then as he said again, “I do
believe you have been asleep,” she answered, with a yawn:

“I think I have, and I don’t know at all what you have been saying. I
heard in a confused way something about that robin’s nest you tried to
break up years ago, and I half thought I had you by the collar again;
then your voice began to sound like bees humming, and I was so tired and
sleepy, I went off. I beg your pardon. It was not very polite. What have
you said to me? Anything important?”

“Great guns!” Herbert replied, not knowing whether to laugh or be angry.
“Don’t you know I have asked you to be my wife?”

She was wide awake now, with every faculty alert, and the hot blood was
staining her face, as she sat up erect and looked at him wonderingly.
She had half expected that something of this sort might happen sometime,
but not so soon. Herbert seemed more like a lover than a friend, and she
certainly cared more for him than for anyone she had ever met, if
indeed, she did not already love him. Still, it was very sudden, being
roused from a sound sleep with an offer of marriage at one o’clock in
the morning, and, besides that, a thought of Fred Lansing crossed her
mind unpleasantly, and the light faded a little from her eyes, which
drooped under Herbert’s ardent gaze.

“Asked me to be your wife?” she said at last. “Oh, no, you can’t mean
it. I am too young, not quite seventeen; and your father would not like
it. He looks upon us as dirt, I know, and has said mean things of my
father, and made insinuations worse than lies, which can be met and
contradicted.”

She was growing warm in her defence of her father, and as her warmth
increased so did Herbert’s.

“I don’t care for a hundred fathers when you are in the scale,” he said.
“I know he has acted mean at times, but after yesterday he will do
better, and if he don’t, I want _you_ and am going to have you!”

Then very rapidly he repeated in substance and with some additions what
he had said to her when she was asleep. She was listening attentively,
and managing to get a tolerably clear idea of his meaning and wishes,
although they were somewhat confusing. She was to promise to marry him
as soon as he was graduated, when they would go abroad for a year or
more, and see everything there was to see in the Old World. In the
meantime she was to persuade her father to send her to some finishing
school, either in Boston or New York, where she would be rooted and
grounded in everything his wife ought to know of the society into which
she would be introduced. He did not say this in so many words, but that
was what he meant, and he went on to say that the engagement must be
kept a secret, partly because his father would make it unpleasant for
him and for her if he knew it, and partly because if either he or she
changed her or his mind, it would be better not to have a prior
engagement known; not that he could change—that was impossible; and it
was equally impossible that she could; but it was well to guard against
contingencies.

He further intimated that during the years of their engagement she was
to receive but little attention from the other sex, but keep herself
wholly for him. Just what he was to do in that respect was not quite
plain, and it struck Louie as a kind of one-sided affair. A secret
engagement did not commend itself to her, and she said so at once, and
that she did not like the way Herbert talked, as if she were not quite
his equal and must be polished to become so.

“You had better leave me and take some city girl, who is up to your
standard and your father’s,” she said hotly, with a flash in her eyes
which Herbert knew was dangerous.

He had blundered somehow and must commence again. “I say, Lou,” he
began, “don’t be so peppery. I mean all right, but am awkward telling
it. I love you. I want you to be my wife. I don’t care for father, nor
anything. Listen to me,” he continued, as she made a movement to get up.
He put her back in her chair and urged his cause, until her scruples
began to give way. He seemed a part of her life. He was young, and
handsome, and masterful in his pleading. He was Judge White’s son, and
that went for something. The trip to Europe was very alluring, although
four long years in the distance, and she was at last overcome by his
eloquence, and by the fatigue which made her weak to resist or to reason
clearly.

“Then it is settled,” he said, triumphantly. “You are to be my wife, and
for the present no one is to know it but ourselves. We are to appear to
the world as we always have, the best of friends—lovers, if they choose
to call us so; they have done that, you know, but the secret is ours.”

He stooped to kiss her, as a seal to their betrothal, but she drew her
head back quickly and put up her hands, with a warning gesture.

“No, Herbert,” she said. “You cannot kiss me till the world knows we are
engaged. I do not consider myself fully pledged till then, although I
shall keep my promise.”

Herbert knew she was in earnest, and stood a moment aghast at being
denied what he felt he had a right to claim. He was not accustomed to
opposition, and a frown settled on his face, as she said in the tone in
which she used to command him when they were children:

“Now you must really go, or I shall fall asleep again, and hark! the
clock is striking two, and I do believe I hear father coming. Yes, there
he is,”—she continued, as the front door opened and her father appeared,
calling to her:

“Daughter, come in. Do you know what time it is?”

“Yes, father, I’m coming,” Louie replied, waving her hand to Herbert,
who went down the steps farthest from Mr. Grey, so as not to speak to
him in passing.

He was not in a mood to talk to anyone, and wanted to be alone, and
think over what he had done, and decide if he had acted wisely in being
so precipitate.

Meanwhile Louie went to her father, who said:

“Was that young White, hurrying down the walk as if he had been stealing
sheep? or was it a lamb he was after?” he added, facetiously, his love
of humor coming to the surface.

He had always been proud of Herbert’s evident liking for Louie, and
nothing would have pleased him better than to know there was an
engagement between them. This Louie suspected, and wanted to tell him
what had passed between herself and Herbert, but her promise restrained
her, and she answered:

“He brought a lamb back to the fold, and waited a little till the
shepherd appeared.”

Then with a good-night she hurried to her room and tried to sleep. But
the excitement of the day and evening had driven her drowsiness away,
and the twitter of birds was heard outside her window, and the early sun
was stealing into her room before she fell into a troubled sleep, in
which she dreamed, sometimes of Herbert, sometimes of Fred Lansing, but
oftener of the scene of the morning, which she seemed to be living over
again, with this difference: that now it was her father’s bank the mob
surrounded, with darker, angrier faces than she had ever seen before,
while she stood in their midst alone, vainly trying to stem the tide,
which bore her at last off her feet and away into darkness and
unconsciousness, from which she at last awoke bathed in perspiration,
with a cry upon her lips for Herbert to help her.




                               CHAPTER XI
                           KEEPING THE SECRET


It took Herbert some time to reach home, the night was so fine and he
had so much to think about. The run on his father’s bank was a
mortification which, now that he had time to think, smarted more than it
had before. That his father should have been treated thus was an
outrage, and that he should have been helped by a bank so much smaller
than his own, was something of a humiliation. And still he was glad that
help had come from Mr. Grey, and at Louie’s instigation. It might make
matters easier for him when his engagement became known.

Then there crossed his mind a thought that possibly he had been rash in
proposing to Louie just as he had done; not that he did not love her,
for he did, and always should, but he had about him enough honor to feel
that it was wrong to bind her to secrecy because he feared his father’s
displeasure, and then suddenly he felt his face grow very red when the
ugly thought presented itself that in four years he might change his
mind, with all the advantages he should have of seeing the world.

“I am a villain to think that. I shall never change,” he said, as he
came in sight of the veranda on which Fred Lansing was sitting, enjoying
the moonlight and wondering why Herbert was gone so long.

At sight of him Herbert’s thought took another turn. Fred was evidently
pleased with Louie—“mashed” Herbert called it. He was going to see her
that afternoon. He was cold-blooded, it was true, but then he might warm
up under the spell of Louie’s beauty, and make things awkward by
proposing to her himself.

“I believe I’ll tell him. I can trust him,” he thought, and in response
to Fred’s “Hallo! old fellow, what have you been doing all this time?”
he went half way up the steps and seating himself on one of them,
replied, “Been offering myself to the prettiest girl in the world!”

“You have!” Fred exclaimed, his feet dropping suddenly from the railing
where they had been resting, while he straightened himself in his chair
and looked his surprise at Herbert, who answered:

“Yes, I have, and was accepted, too; but you are not to speak of it. I
shall tell no one but you. It is to be kept a secret at present.”

“Why?” Fred asked in a hard tone which roused Herbert to defend what he
had done.

“Why, you see, we are both young, I twenty and she seventeen, or
thereabouts, and we cannot think of marrying for a long time—four years
at least.”

“Well?” Fred said in the same tone, while Herbert went on:

“I must go to college and Louie must go to school and get polished up in
the ways of the world, different from Merivale—a one-horse town, you
know.”

The hardness of Fred’s voice seemed to have passed to his face, but
Herbert was not looking at him, as he continued:

“It is better to keep quiet if I want any peace. Father would row it
awfully, if he knew, and I might not be able to stand four years of
blowing.”

“Not for Louie?” Fred asked.

“Why, yes,” Herbert replied, “for her, if for anybody, but continual
dropping wears the stone and father is terrible at a nag. He has a great
antipathy to Mr. Grey, although he doesn’t know a thing against him, for
sure, except that he came here poor, and lived in the White Row, as our
tenant, and Mrs. Grey took in sewing.”

“That does not hurt Louie any,” was Fred’s prompt response.

“Certainly not,” Herbert said very cheerfully, glad that Fred saw it in
the right light. “But it hurts her with father, who might get so furious
as to disinherit me. It is in him. You don’t know father.”

“And if he did, would you give up Louie?” Fred asked, and something in
his voice made Herbert look at him quickly.

“By George!” he exclaimed, “I believe you are half in love with her,
yourself.”

The cigar Fred had been smoking when Herbert came up had gone out, and,
brushing the ashes from it, he stood up and said:

“It would be absurd to be in love with a girl to whom I never spoke
until yesterday. I think her the prettiest girl I have ever seen, and
the pluckiest; and congratulate you upon having won her. But don’t keep
it a secret. It is unjust to her and a harm to yourself. Better stand
the storm at once, if there is to be one. Good-night, or rather
morning—for see, the sky is brightening in the east.”

He walked away, while Herbert looked after him and said, “I am glad I
got ahead of him, for if he isn’t in love with her now, he soon would
be,” and that thought went a long way toward reconciling the young man
to White’s Row and the plain sewing done for his mother.

Breakfast was very late at the White house that morning, and partly for
this reason, and partly because he was still smarting under the
indignity put upon him the day before, the judge was not in the best of
humor, and did not try to conceal it. He had not slept, and he was
cross. The coffee tasted as if it were warmed over from the night
previous, and he had no doubt it was; one of his eggs was too hard, the
other too soft; his toast was cold, and his napkin— “Well, this is a
nice thing for a gentleman’s table,” he said, and he held up a small,
thin bit of linen, which had evidently seen much service.

“Can’t you do better than this?” and he turned to his wife, who replied:

“Not this morning. Every large napkin was used last night, as the
caterer did not bring enough, and I have only this half-dozen that are
fresh. I don’t know how long I have had them. Mrs. Grey hemmed them for
me, when they first came to town, or rather her daughter did. She was a
little girl then, and I remember her bringing them home and looking so
pleased as she told me she hemmed them, because her mother was ill. I
thought her very pretty in her white sun-bonnet and bib apron. She
looked pretty last night. Yes, they are very thin, and I do believe
there’s a hole in yours, Fred. Let me change with you.”

It was Mrs. White’s habit to stick to a subject when once she was upon
it, and she rambled on about the napkins Louie Grey had hemmed years
before, while Herbert’s face grew crimson, and his eyes sought those of
Fred, who looked at him with no change of expression whatever until the
judge, roused by the name of Grey, began:

“Strange how things work. The world is one big teeter; sometimes your
end of the board is up plumb, sometimes down. That’s the way with Grey.
End of the teeter was on the ground when he came here, and hadn’t
anything that anybody knew of; and now, my land! he thinks himself at
the top of the heap. Did me a good turn yesterday, to be sure; but, upon
my soul, I mistrust the man just the same. Can’t help it. There was
something behind. Girl is well enough, but is a chip of the old block,
or I am mistaken. Looks like him; has his ways, purring and soft. By the
way, Herbert, it took you a good while to walk home with her. I heard
you when you come in, and the roosters were crowing, and I b’lieve the
sun was rising. Where were you?”

Before Herbert could reply, Fred spoke for him and said:

“He sat with me on the piazza after he came back. It was late when we
came in. I hope we did not greatly disturb you.”

The judge was always suave to Fred Lansing, who represented a large
fortune and a lineage as good and long as his own.

“Oh, no,” he said, with a wave of his hand, “I couldn’t sleep, thinking
of that infernal row at the bank. I wonder I did not lose my mind with
all that howling Babel. I don’t want Herbert bamboozled by the Grey
girl. She is all right in her place, and did grand work yesterday. My
wife will write her a note of thanks, and I shall make her a present at
Christmas, if somebody will remind me of it. She sings well. How would
it do to give her one of those things, you know, that pull out with a
bellus!”

He looked at Herbert, who had gulped down his coffee and was clenching
his fists under the table. At his father’s last words he sprang up and
exclaimed:

“Oh, heavens, father! don’t insult Louie with an accordion; better give
her a jew’s-harp!” and left the room, banging the door behind him.

The judge gave a knowing nod to his wife and said:

“I told you so. He is half gone with that Grey girl. Better get him out
of town as soon as possible. Can’t you take him with you to Newport?
I’ll trust you to cure him.”

He turned to Fred, who was also leaving the table in something of a
hurry, and affected not to hear him.

“I don’t know but Bert is right. His father would make it rather hot for
him, if he knew; but it is hard on the girl. I wonder how much she
really cares for him, and if there will not come an awakening,” Fred was
thinking as he went to his room and busied himself for a time with his
portmanteau, putting something very carefully away in it. “I ought to
know all the commandments. I have said them at Sunday school often
enough, and hear them in church. One of them is, ‘Thou shalt not
steal!’” he said. “I reckon I have broken it, and the worst of it is, I
don’t care,” he continued, as he locked his valise and went downstairs
to join his mother and Blanche Percy on the piazza.

There were fresh napkins for lunch that day, but only five of the six
used at breakfast were put into the basket for soiled linen by the maid,
who, with her mind on many duties, did not notice the absence of the
sixth. Nor was it missed for a long time, and when search was made it
was not to be found. Nancy Sharp, who sometimes worked for the White
house was accredited with taking it home and forgetting to return it,
but as it was very thin, nothing was said to her about it and it was
finally forgotten.

                  *       *       *       *       *

“I want you at the bank to help straighten matters,” the judge said,
after lunch, to Herbert, who made a wry face, for he was intending to
call on Louie and forestall Fred, if possible, and keep him from being
alone with Louie.

But there was no help for it, and in rather a bad humor he accompanied
his father to the bank, where they found a few people re-depositing what
they had drawn out the day before, and looking ashamed as they did it.
Godfrey Sheldon was not among the number. His grievance at not having
received an invitation to the party was not at all diminished, but
rather increased by the Gibsons, who had lost no time in reporting the
grand affair to their less fortunate neighbors. “Such a perfectly lovely
time, with everybody there but you,” they said. “Strange you were not
invited. There must have been a mistake.”

The Sheldon girls knew there was no mistake, and their resentment grew
as they talked of the affair at dinner, and asked their father if he was
going to return his money to the “White Bank.

“Not if I know myself,” was his reply, as he went out to harness his
horse preparatory to driving into town, where his first call was at
Grey’s Bank. “No, sir! Not a red of my money shall ever see the inside
of White’s Bank again,” he said to Mr. Grey, who asked if he wished to
return it. “If my girls are not good enough for an invite, my money is
not good enough for his bank, and I shall leave it here. It is a big sum
not to be drawing interest, but my wife has got it into her head that
savings banks are going to burst, and if it wasn’t here she’d be hidin’
it all over the house. So I shall leave it here till I get a good
investment on bond and mortgage for part of it, anyway. She hain’t no
fear of your bank, and I hadn’t none of White’s. ’TwanO’t for that I
took it out, and I’d no idea of a run. But the old thing was game,
wasn’t it? I don’t see how it stood so square, do you?”

Mr. Grey only smiled and said he was glad it did stand, and thanked Mr.
Sheldon for his confidence and big deposit, and hoped it would be safe
with him. The story of Louie’s part in the run had not yet become known,
and Mr. Grey did not wish to be the first to tell it. He was satisfied
and pleased with the large amount of money left with him, and the trust
reposed in him, and once when alone in his rear office, he buried his
face in his hands and whispered:

“Keep me from temptation and sin!”

He had not yet seen the judge, but when a little later the latter
appeared, and with his old pomposity ascended the steps, he went to the
door with a cheery good-afternoon, which was returned civilly, but
hastily. The judge was in a hurry to know how he stood, and how many
“dumb fools” had left their money in Grey’s Bank. There were more than
he supposed, and his face grew cloudy as he said to his cashier:

“We couldn’t stand much of a run without help to-day, could we? But that
money from New York, due to come on the next train, will fix us up
straight. Here, you, Herbert, look over the books and see just how much
has gone to that man Grey.”

Herbert was not in a very good mood to look over books. He had greeted
his prospective fatherin-law very cordially, but had felt a little
twinge of conscience, knowing he ought to be honest and outspoken and
say to him: “I have asked Louie to be my wife, and she has consented.”

He was in a great hurry to get to Louie, and while looking over the
books kept wondering if Fred were there with her, or would he give up
the call after what had been told him.

Fred was there, and Blanche Percy was with him. She had signified a wish
to see Louie again, and Fred had asked her to accompany him. But for his
knowledge of the engagement he would have preferred going alone, but now
it didn’t matter; nothing mattered much, and he wondered why he felt so
dull and depressed, scarcely hearing what Blanche was saying to him as
they drove to the Grey’s, where they found Louie just as he had found
her the previous day, sitting alone on the piazza.

She had not been as happy that day as newly engaged girls are wont to
be. The secret weighed upon her, and she wondered how she could keep it
four years, and why she must keep it at all. She would do a good deal to
save Herbert from unpleasant relations with his father, but wouldn’t
they be just as unpleasant at the last, when the truth was known? Would
four years lessen them at all? She doubted it, and was sorry she had
given the promise.

Then, in spite of all she could do to prevent it, thoughts of Fred
Lansing would obtrude themselves into her mind, with a feeling that he
would never have required so hard a thing of her if a hundred fathers
had stood in the way. He had said he should call that afternoon, and it
was partly in anticipation of his call that she had taken a seat upon
the piazza, just where she had met him the day before. There was nothing
of the coquette about Louie. She had promised to be Herbert’s wife and
would be true to him as steel; but just what her feeling was with regard
to Fred Lansing, she did not know. Comparatively he was a stranger, and
yet he did not seem so. He had been so kind and thoughtful, and was so
wholly a gentleman in every act, and his voice had been so pleasant and
winsome when he spoke to her, and his eyes had looked so kindly at her
that her pulse throbbed with a delicious kind of exultation whenever she
thought of him, and she was glad he was to be her cousin. The
possibility that he might have been anything nearer to her did not enter
her mind. He was far above her and above Herbert, who was more on her
plane and suited her better. Then she wondered why Herbert had not been
to see her, and was feeling a little piqued at his neglect, when the
White carriage drew up and Miss Percy and Fred alighted.

It was scarcely possible that there should not be an air of
consciousness in Louie’s manner as she went forward to meet the people
with whom she expected to be allied. Fred saw it, and felt a little pang
he could not define as he looked at her bright face, suffused with a
flush of joy, as she greeted them. Herbert had asked if he were in love
with her, and he had not answered except to say, that it was absurd, but
the bit of linen hidden so carefully in his valise, for the sake of a
little girl in a bib apron and white sun-bonnet, seemed to tell a
different story and to prove that love is not always of slow growth.
Herbert’s announcement of his engagement had taken him by surprise, and
the secrecy attending it offended his sense of openness and honor. Then
he knew Herbert pretty well, and had detected in him a drawing away from
Louie’s father and mother, as if they were inferior to the White’s. Had
he been in Herbert’s place he would not have cared who Louie’s parents
were, or what they were. Louie was just as sweet as if she had never
lived in White’s Row, or hemmed the napkin he had purloined.

“I shouldn’t wonder if I were more than half in love,” he thought, but
there was nothing in his manner to show his real feelings, as he offered
her his hand and said laughingly that she did not look at all as if she
had danced all night till broad daylight.

“Oh, I didn’t,” Louie answered in the same strain. “You forget that I
sat through one dance, and then sang that ridiculous bird-song twice,
which nearly split my throat. It aches now.”

“And it is about that throat I have come to talk,” Miss Percy said,
entering at once upon the principal object of her call. “You have the
most wonderful voice I ever heard in one so young. You must cultivate
it. You ought to go abroad—to Marchesi, in Paris. Don’t you believe your
father would let you go with me in the autumn? I have a great desire to
see what can be made of your voice.”

Louie’s eyes were like stars as she thought of Paris, but a shadow fell
on her face when she remembered Herbert, who at that moment came bowling
up the street on his wheel, looking flushed and not altogether pleased
when he saw who Louie’s visitors were. He knew Fred was watching him,
and felt annoyed at the seeming indifference with which Louie received
him. She merely bowed to him and gave him her hand, and then kept
talking to Miss Percy as if he were not there. She was only carrying out
his instructions, he knew, but he would have liked more warmth in her
manner, and was not at all pleased when Miss Percy began to speak again
of Paris and Marchesi, and taking Louie abroad.

“Not with a view to the stage?” he said, and he laid his hand heavily on
Louie’s shoulder, as if to protect her from a threatened danger.

Miss Percy looked curiously at him, wondering why he should be so
excited, or why he should care whether Louie sang on the stage or not.
Neither could she define her own interest in a young girl she had known
so short a time. She was passionately fond of music, and Louie’s voice
had impressed her greatly. She was also rather fond of attending to
other people’s business and having her own way about it. When once her
mind was made up, she held on with a firm grip, and usually carried her
point. With nothing in particular to do and plenty of money to spend,
she would like to have a girl like Louie under her wing; it would help
to divert her mind from a horror which was ever present with her when
she was unoccupied, and she talked on of Paris and Marchesi and Europe
generally as if it were settled that Louie was to go abroad with her in
the autumn.

“Consult your father and mother. I will see them another time, and
remember, it is to be at my own expense. You will be my companion,” she
said at last, as she arose to go.

She had done the most of the talking, leaving Fred and Herbert quite out
of the question; but the latter bided his time, knowing he should have a
chance to express his opinion of Paris and Marchesi after the lady and
Fred were gone. Fred was in no hurry to leave, but as he came with Miss
Percy, he felt obliged to go when she did, and rather reluctantly said
good-by, and left the field to Herbert, who began to air his opinion of
the stage rather hotly and of Miss Percy meddling with what didn’t
concern her. Foreign travel would be a good education in many respects,
he said, and help to fit Louie for the position she would occupy as his
wife, and on that account he would like to have her go abroad with Miss
Percy, who knew a great many nice people both in London, Paris and
Geneva, but he would not have her sing in public, and it would come to
that if Miss Percy had her way. As it was, his father would be angry
enough when he heard of the engagement, and if the stage were added, it
might mean disinheritance. Then, what would they do? Stay in hum-drum
Merivale and work for a living, he a clerk in her father’s bank,
perhaps, and she on the road half the time with a troupe, leaving him to
be spoken of, if he were mentioned at all, as Mrs. White’s husband; if,
indeed, she did not take a stage name, and his identity be lost
entirely. A good deal more he said of the same nature, with sundry
suggestions with regard to Louie’s conduct as his promised wife, until
she began to think that being engaged was not the state of bliss she had
fancied it might be.

From a joking, teasing boy, Herbert seemed to have changed suddenly into
an exacting master, who was to exercise his will over all her actions,
while he was to be as free as ever. She was not to receive the
attentions of any young man, but maintain a dignified reserve towards
them all. They might think her proud, but no matter. When she was his
wife they would understand. As to Paris and Marchesi, they were not to
be thought of. She must go to some finishing school either in Boston or
New York. He would himself make some inquiries as to where it was better
for her to go.

For a time Louie listened in silence, but as Herbert’s restrictions
continued, her temper got the ascendant, and a smart quarrel ensued,
which threatened to end affairs between them. Louie said they were
ended, and she would do as she pleased. She was not a child to be
dictated to in that way. If she chose to be civil to a young man she
should do so. She should not shut herself up like a nun, while he was
having his freedom. As to the stage, she did not believe Miss Percy had
thought of such a thing in connection with her going abroad. For
herself—she certainly had no desire, but if she had, she would sing on a
hundred stages if she chose.

Then Herbert grew angry, and told her to sing and make a spectacle of
herself if she wanted to, but he hoped she would remember what she was
giving up, when she threw him over, with all he could do for her and the
position he could give her.

To this Louie retorted that she did not think him of as much consequence
as he thought himself. She considered a daughter of Thomas Grey quite as
good as a son of Robert White, and others thought so, too. He needn’t
trouble himself to look up a finishing school for her. If she cared to
go to one, her father was capable of finding it.

And so, boy- and girl-like, they quarrelled on until Herbert’s love
triumphed over every other feeling, and the quarrel was made up as such
quarrels usually are, each taking upon himself the most blame. Louie,
however, held out the longest. Her pride was sorely wounded. She
resented Herbert’s assumption of superiority over her and her family,
and refused for a long time to listen to his conciliatory words. But he
prevailed at last, and peace was restored. Herbert had called her a
little cat during the quarrel, but she was a kitten now, gentle, purring
and submissive, and he left her at last, in a very complacent state of
mind, thinking as he walked home that he had commenced right, that
though he had quarrelled, he had conquered, as he ought to do; that the
man should be the master, and if he didn’t assert himself on the start,
Louie, who was a little hot-headed, would get the upperhand, which would
never do, and he a White.

Three days after this the Lansings left Merivale, but not until Miss
Percy had seen Louie again with regard to her voice, and had also
interviewed Mr. Grey, after two or three ineffectual attempts to see
him. Evidently he tried to shun her, but she captured him at last in his
bank, when he could not get away. When he found that the ordeal must be
met, he made the best of it, and nothing could have been more polite or
courteous than his manner as he took her into his rear office, and
listened to her proposition to take his daughter abroad and give her the
benefit of a musical training in Paris or Berlin, or both.

Nothing was said of the stage as a future possibility, and it is
doubtful if Miss Percy had a thought of it. She wanted Louie, and meant
to have her, and had planned many things she would do when once the
young girl was with her.

Accustomed to have her own way, she was not prepared for Mr. Grey’s
decided refusal. He thanked her for her interest in Louie, but said he
could not part with her. Later, when she was through school, he meant to
take her abroad himself and possibly give her some instructions in
music, although he doubted if it would help her much. Her voice suited
him; training might spoil it. He was very firm, and Miss Percy left him
with a feeling that he was a very obstinate man and a very peculiar man,
whom she could not understand. He was a gentleman in every respect, but
he impressed her as being very shy for one who had seen much of the
world. Evidently he was under restraint in her presence, and was
relieved when she arose to go, after exhausting every possible argument
in favor of taking Louie with her to Europe. He was certainly standing
in his own light, or rather in Louie’s, and when she bade the latter
good-by she said to her:

“If anything ever happens and your father changes his mind, let me know
at once.”

Nothing ever could happen, Louie was sure, and, although Paris and
Marchesi seemed very alluring, she was happy to stay at home with
Herbert, who, since their first quarrel, had been very lover-like in his
attentions to her when alone with her, but quite indifferent when in
public. He did this, he said, to blind his father, who would give him
Hail Columbia if he had a suspicion of their relations to each other.
Still the secret weighed heavily on Louie, nor was it made easier
because of the exquisite diamond ring Herbert put upon her finger the
night before he started for college. She could only wear it in her room,
or when alone, and it seemed to her a mockery to call it an engagement
ring. Her nature was open as the day, and she rebelled against the
secrecy imposed upon her, and told Herbert so in every letter she wrote
him. These were not many, for here again his caution came in play. If
too many letters passed, the post-office clerks might comment, and the
gossip reach his father, of whom he seemed more in fear than when he was
a boy.

“If he knew the truth, he would either remove me from college or cut my
allowance, and I should not be pleased with either,” he wrote.

He was posing at Yale as a young man of unbounded wealth, and spending
money freely, and his father paid the bills without a protest, rather
proud than otherwise that they were so large, so long as Herbert was
involved in no disgrace. It was his son, and he was glad to have him
hand in glove with the high bucks, he said, and glad he was seeing the
world. He managed to see a good deal of it in one way and another, and
at the close of his first year came home, with a great sense of his own
importance, and a still greater sense of the dullness of Merivale.

“A one-horse town every way, and a century behind the times, with
nothing going on—nothing to interest a fellow. Everybody at work as if
his life depended upon the amount accomplished from sunrise to sunset.
Nobody with any leisure—no ball-game, no hops, no anything!” he said to
Louie, who did not think him improved by his first year in Yale, and
resented his criticisms upon the town generally and her father in
particular, because he had refused to send her to a school in New York,
where Herbert could see her often and could occasionally show her to his
classmates. All this and much more he had written to Louie, who spoke to
her father of New York, and expressed a desire to go there. After some
inquiries with regard to different schools, Mr. Grey said to her, “Which
do you care for most, a thorough education, or knowing how to walk and
stand and sit and enter a room?”

Louie laughed, and replied that she would like both—the accomplishments
and a thorough education.

“I think, then, Bryn Mawr is the place, rather than a large city, where
there are so many attractions and distractions. They turn out splendid
scholars there.”

For a moment Louie’s brow was puckered with a frown. New York
represented to her everything that was desirable. But with her usual
docility she yielded to her father’s judgment, and Bryn Mawr was decided
upon greatly to the disgust of Herbert, who said several things not very
complimentary to that institution as compared with the New York school
which he had in mind.

“Why, if you take the whole course at Bryn Mawr you will be an old maid
before you get through, with your head crammed full of musty stuff,
which, as my wife, will be of no earthly use to you,” he said.

She ought to see the girls he had met, and whose brothers were in his
class—tip-top girls, and up-to-date; wore big hats and tailor gowns and
smoked cigarettes, some of them. He didn’t quite like that, of course,
but then—well—a lot of girls did it, and one must keep in the swim. The
Merivale boys called him a snob, and he mentally called them country
clowns and kept mostly to himself so far as they were concerned. He saw
Louie often, but did not hesitate to criticise her whenever she failed
to come up to the standard of the tip-top girls with tailor gowns and
big hats. Sometimes Louie took his criticisms meekly, and sometimes
turned upon him furiously, telling him to go to his tip-top girls, who
smoked cigarettes, and leave her alone. On the whole, however, she was
very happy and very proud of him, and longed to have it known that he
belonged to her. But at any suggestion of this kind Herbert resolutely
shook his head. One year had passed quickly, he said, and three more
would pass quicker, when, if she had had enough of Bryn Mawr and Greek
and Latin, she would be his, and his arguments prevailed to quiet Louie,
if not to convince her.




                              CHAPTER XII
                                MR. GREY


It was now nearly a year since the great run, as it was called. The
story of the part Louie had in it had gotten abroad, and at first the
people had some misgivings with regard to the solidity of a bank which,
but for the novel help given it, might have toppled over. But this
feeling gradually died out, and the National came up like a strong ship
out of a storm which had scarred, but not weakened it. Many of its
patrons returned to it, and others didn’t. Godfrey Sheldon still held
his grudge, and two thousand dollars of his money still reposed, or were
supposed to repose, in the Grey Bank, which gave no sign of bursting up,
as the judge had predicted it would. To all human appearances, Mr. Grey
was more prosperous than ever, and no one in Merivale spent money as
freely as he did. He gave to everything; he drove a finer carriage than
Judge White, and his bays were far handsomer than the judge’s blacks.
His coachman wore a dark grey livery and tall hat. He had made his wife
a Christmas present of an exquisite set of diamonds; Louie had a new
Steinway, which cost seven hundred dollars, and a diamond ring whose
value was estimated anywhere from three hundred to five hundred dollars.
There were frequent visits to Boston and New York, where the family
stopped at the Touraine and the Waldorf. There was to be a trip to
Narragansett Pier for the month of August, and a suite of rooms was
engaged at one of the most expensive hotels. For this trip several
costumes were being made in Boston and Worcester for Mrs. Grey and
Louie, who, Mr. Grey said, should not be behind anyone in dress, if
money could buy it.

In the midst of her prosperity Louie did not lose her head at all, but
was the same bright, friendly girl, with a pleasant, familiar word for
every one. She was too familiar, Herbert thought, trying to repress her.
But here he failed. It did not hurt her, she told him, to talk with
Nancy Sharp and people like her, and she should do it for all of him! In
this respect she was like her father, who never forgot to be polite to
every one, and his good-morning to Nancy Sharp was just as cordial as to
Judge White.

But gradually a change had come over Mr. Grey; a feeling of depression
which he could not shake off, and which was more perceptible at home
than when mixing with people outside. There was nothing much the matter,
he said to his wife and Louie when questioned as to what ailed him. He
had some indigestion and was tired of business and wanted to get away
from it awhile, that was all.

“There is nothing the matter with the business, is there? No trouble, I
mean?” Louie asked.

“Trouble!” he repeated quickly, with a sharp glance at her. “Of course
not. What trouble can there be? I am having deposits all the time; not
large ones, but every little helps.”

Louie had learned a good deal of the workings of a bank since the White
run, and she continued:

“And these deposits are loaned on good securities? They are safe?”

“Safe! Of course they are safe! Did you think they were not?” her father
replied.

“Oh, no,” she said. “I only wanted to be sure, and if these securities
should fail you still have enough to pay the depositors if they should
run on you as they did on Judge White?”

What ailed the girl? She was certainly a little disagreeable in her
questioning, and for almost the first time in his life her father
answered crossly, “Pay! Of course I could! What are you worrying about?
I can manage the bank.”

After that he tried to seem more natural and cheerful, but it was at
last a dismal failure. His headaches were more frequent. He could not
sleep; he ate scarcely anything, and would sometimes sit for an hour
without speaking, with his eyes closed, as if thinking intently. His
trips to New York were more frequent. He was consulting a physician for
nervous dyspepsia, he said, but he usually returned worse than when he
went. To his wife’s and Louie’s inquiries he would answer lightly that
he would be all right with a change of air. Narragansett Pier and sea
baths would bring him up at once, and days came and went, and in the
social atmosphere of Merivale there was no sign of the impending storm
which would make the great run seem like a bubble.

The beginning of the end came one Saturday afternoon when the bank was
to close earlier than usual. Knowing this, Nancy Sharp hurried to get in
a few dollars she had been laying by, and which she thought too large a
sum to be quite safe in her house over Sunday. Her example was followed
by Widow Brown and two or three more, one of whom made a deposit of a
hundred dollars which he said he should want on Monday.

There was a strange look in Mr. Grey’s eyes, and he seemed half
uncertain whether to take the money, but as he could give no good reason
why he should not, he took it, but put Nancy’s five dollars in the box
where he had kept her twenty marked dollars. The rest went into the
common fund, and then the work of the day was done.

Wilson, who had been in the bank since it started, closed the doors, put
up the shutters and went out for his few hours’ holiday, leaving both
keys with Mr. Grey, who was alone but not idle. Every account was gone
over again and again, every dollar counted, and some of it transferred
from the safe to his pocket.

“I shall put it back on Monday, of course,” he said to himself; “but I
must have something to pay bills to-night and for church to-morrow. I
have never failed to put a dollar on the plate. I shall pay it Monday.”
He kept repeating this, “I shall pay it Monday. Help will surely come
then, or to-morrow.”

Many a time during the last few weeks he had said, “Help will come
to-morrow,” and he had waited with feverish impatience for the morrow
and the help which did not come. He was usually among the first at the
post-office, his pulse throbbing and his heart beating, as he waited for
his mail. As he took his letters from his drawer, and glancing at the
addresses, knew that the one he wanted was not among them, there always
came over him a feeling of nausea and blackness for a moment, and he
stumbled against the people jostling him as the eager crowd came in.
Then with a mighty effort which made every nerve quiver, he recovered
himself, bowed to every one he knew, and with a pleasant word passed out
into the fresh air where he could breathe more freely. This had been
repeated for days and days, and the strain was becoming unbearable.

“Better know the worst than endure this suspense any longer,” he said on
the Saturday when matters were reaching a crisis.

A few small depositors who wanted their money, took it out in the
morning, and he could have shouted for joy when they did so.

“There will be less to consign me to perdition when the crash comes,” he
thought, and was sorry for any fresh deposit made that day.

Nothing could help him now but the aid so long looked for. Why had
fortune turned against him so persistently when she had once been so
lavish with her favors that he had only to try his luck and win. Now it
was constant loss until this last venture, which had promised so much
and must bring success, or he be ruined with many who had trusted him
and looked upon him as a soul of honor and integrity. No one stood
higher in Merivale than he did, or would fall lower if he fell. He
thought of the mob which had surrounded White’s Bank during the run, and
said to himself, “That was a ripple compared to the storm which will
beat against me when all is known. Then there was a chance to get
something, for it was a run; with me it will be a total failure, with no
hope of payment, and so many of them are my personal friends.”

He almost knew the list of depositors by heart, but he went over it
again, and, strong man that he was, his tears fell like rain as he saw
the names of those whose little all, which meant so much hard work, had
been trusted to him. Among the names was Louie’s. She had thought it a
fine thing to have a bank account, and from the liberal allowance paid
to her weekly she had saved and deposited one hundred and fifty dollars,
and had nearly tormented his life out with asking where it was invested
and what per cent. it was paying him.

“Poor little Louie! She shall not lose,” he said, and going again to his
safe he took out one hundred and fifty dollars, and putting it in the
box with Nancy Sharp’s marked silver, charged it to Louie as withdrawn,
and then his work was done and he sat down in his rear office, conscious
of a great weakness and throbbing of his heart in his throat, giving him
a sensation of smothering.

He had felt this before when returning from New York, or waiting for
news from that city. But the feeling had never been quite as intense as
it was now, nor quite as painful, making him gasp and put his hands to
his throat, which felt as if swelling to twice its usual size. The room
was dark with the heavy shutters drawn, and the gas extinguished, but
the future outlook was darker still, with no ray to lighten it unless it
came in the morrow’s mail, or Monday’s. He had reason to expect it on
the morrow.

“And it will come; it must,” he said, his natural hopefulness beginning
to assert itself. “To-morrow will put things right, and then, as I hope
for heaven, I’ll do business on the square. I’m not naturally a bad man,
nor a dishonest one. It is this infernal disease born in me, which has
mastered me.”

He heard the town clock strike five, and started up quickly. They were
expecting him home to drive, but it was so late now he might as well be
later, and pay the weekly bills. There was the butcher and baker and
grocer and fruit-stall, and very likely there was something at the candy
store, for Louie was fond of candy, and never bought an inferior kind.
Then he remembered with a start that his quarter’s rent was due on
Monday. Should he pay that, or let it take its chance?

“I’ll risk it,” he said. “Judge White can stand a loss better than the
trades-people.”

Once he thought of going to the judge for a loan. But he put that aside
with a laugh which sounded strangely in the silent, shadowy room.

“I could not bear his exultant sneer as he refused. I’d rather face the
mob,” he said, and began to put on his coat which he had laid aside.

Very slowly he went around the rooms, sitting a moment in his chair near
the window, standing next where he had so often stood to receive or pay
out money, and then where the depositors stood when they paid it in or
received it. Thousands and thousands had passed through that opening.
Where was it now?

“Gone like the dew,” he whispered, involuntarily stretching out his
hands as if to take something from an unseen presence.

Then, relighting the gas, he went a second time to the safe, counting
what was there to see if he had not made a mistake, and feeling the
tears in his eyes again because there was so little.

“I must go now,” he said. “Good-by, old bank! I shall know the worst or
best perhaps when I am here again.”

He shut the safe, put out the gas, and went out into the sunshine, with
a feeling that he had closed the door on all that was respectable in
Thomas Grey. Every one he met had for him a cheery good-afternoon, which
he returned, as cheerily, but with a feeling that he ought not to be
spoken to in this way. Once, as he walked, he found himself stooping
from sheer humility, as he thought what he was and what the world would
know him to be erelong if help did not come. He paid the butcher and the
baker and the grocer and the confectioner, and a small bill at his
tailor’s, which he remembered had been owing for some little time. Then
he started for home, where he found his wife anxious to know what had
detained him, and Louie absorbed in the contents of two express boxes
which had just arrived from Boston and contained the finery intended for
Narragansett Pier.

“Isn’t this be-u-tiful!” she said to him, holding up an evening dress of
silk and lace and chiffon. “Only it cost twice as much as I thought it
would. Look,” and she handed her father a bundle of bills, which had
come with the express packages, and which made Mr. Grey gasp for a
moment.

Then he smiled and said: “Nearly a thousand dollars for gewgaws! That is
pretty steep. But never mind; they will be paid like the rest. And now
give me some strong, clear coffee. My head is splitting.”

He looked very pale, and said he could not go to dinner, but would lie
on the couch in his den. Headaches were very frequent with him now, but
this seemed worse than usual, and at an early hour he retired to his
room, saying sleep would do him good, and he should be all right in the
morning.

He was all right, or seemed so, when he went down to breakfast, and to
Louie’s question, “How did you sleep?” he replied:

“Sleep? Why, there was not a single break from the time I put my head
upon the pillow until I heard Jane open the blinds.”

He did not explain that the “no break” was in wakefulness rather than in
sleep, for he had not closed his eyes. Once, when he knew by his wife’s
breathing that she was sleeping soundly, he arose, and going to the
drawer where he kept his revolver, took it out and examined it
carefully, holding it once to his head, and thinking how easy it would
be to end everything in this world so far as he was concerned.

Then there came before him the picture of a ghastly face he had once
seen with a bullet-hole in the temple. He could not subject his wife and
Louie to that horrid sight, and, returning the revolver to its place, he
crept back to bed, shivering with cold, although the night was hot and
sultry and a storm was coming up. He could hear the faint mutterings of
thunder, and listened as it grew nearer and nearer, until the house
shook with the terrific peals and every corner of the room was ablaze
with electricity.

“If it would only strike me!” he thought; and, going to the window, he
watched the storm with a wish that the forked flame darting so viciously
through the sky and seeming so near would take him with it—somewhere, he
cared not where, so that he escaped what by some premonition he felt
sure awaited him on the morrow.

It was to-morrow now, for as the storm passed, the early summer morning
broke in all its fresh loveliness, and he thought how beautiful were the
grounds around his house, with the raindrops on flower and shrub and
grass. When he built the house he had deeded it to his wife, and was
glad he had done so. The law could not touch that—nor his horses, nor
carriage, nor piano. All were his wife’s and Louie’s, unless they gave
them up, as perhaps they would. Well, it didn’t matter. Nothing would
matter much if things went wrong. It was Sunday, and in a few hours he
would know what that day would bring him. He should go to church, of
course, he said, and sit once more in his pew, for which he paid nearly
as much as Judge White paid for his.

He went to church behind his handsome bays, and never stood straighter,
or read louder, or seemed more devout, or paid stricter attention to the
sermon, although during the last of it his ears were strained to catch
the first rumble of the train which was to bring him heaven or hell.

He heard the scream of the engine as it stopped at the station, heard it
as it went on, heard the ‘bus as it passed the church with the mail,
which he saw in fancy opened in the office, and saw the letters put into
his drawer—four of them—he could have sworn there were four, but only
one had any interest for him, and that lay on the top. He did not know
whether he were in a trance or not, with a gift for far-seeing. He only
knew he was at the office and at the church, too. He was very conscious
of that last fact, and conducted himself becomingly—stood when he ought
to stand, bowed his head when he ought to bow it, and dropped his silver
dollar on the plate with a thud, which made the judge, who was passing
it, frown disapprovingly.

“Blowing his own trumpet—thinks, maybe, he is setting me an example,” he
thought, as he placed his quarter more quietly upon the plate.

Church was out at last, and Mr. Grey was among the first to reach the
door.

“Take us to the post-office,” he said to his coachman, who, with the
smart carriage and prancing bays, was waiting for him.

Joe touched his hat and drove to the post-office where the mail was
distributing. Mrs. Grey and Louie did not alight, but waited while Mr.
Grey went in, unlocked his drawer, and found, as he had expected, four
letters, the one on the top bearing the New York postmark and directed
in the handwriting he knew so well.

He could not wait till he reached home before knowing the truth, and,
tearing open the envelope, he read that his worst fears were fulfilled.
There was no hope from any quarter. He was absolutely ruined, and for a
moment everything turned black, and he felt blindly for something to
lean upon. There was a deadly nausea at his stomach, and the people’s
voices sounded like the hum of a swarm of bees which once settled on a
tree over his head when he was a boy. Then he rallied, and wondered that
he could be so calm—that he didn’t feel anything. Something had benumbed
him completely, so that his head was just as erect and his smile as
pleasant as of old, as he made his way through the crowd and out to the
street, where his high-mettled horses were pawing the road, anxious to
be off. Two or three times he stopped to speak to people—to Godfrey
Sheldon, and Nancy Sharp. She went to the office for the excitement,
rather than because she expected anything. The sight of Mr. Sheldon gave
him a twinge, but Nancy’s money was safe and his “Hallo, Nancy!” was
more hearty than usual.

“Hallo, Mr. Grey! Will you be wantin’ your bank cleaned this week?” was
Nancy’s rejoinder.

“Perhaps so. I’ll let you know,” Mr. Grey replied, as he walked past her
to his brougham, where Herbert White stood talking to Louie of a
moonlight sail on the river the next night, and saying he should call
for her at half-past seven.

Mr. Grey had suspected that there was, or might be something serious
between the young man and his daughter, and he found himself wondering
if the trouble would end it.

“Probably,” he said to himself, but greeted Herbert cordially and
invited him to go home with them to dinner.

Herbert might have accepted but for his father, who came puffing from
the post-office, his hands full of letters, one of which he handed to
his son, saying:

“It’s from Fred, and I have one from Esther. They sailed yesterday for
Europe, where they are to join Miss Percy. Come, hurry; I want to get
home out of this heat. How are you, Grey?”

This last was in response to Mr. Grey’s cordial, “Good-afternoon, judge.
Hot day, isn’t it?”

Herbert bowed to Mrs. Grey and Louie, and walked toward his carriage,
but the Grey brougham was ahead of it, sending back clouds of dust which
made the judge sneeze and choke and wipe his eyes as he wondered “Why in
thunder Grey wanted to drive so fast and raise such an infernal dust!”

“Don’t he know it’s blowing right in my face, or don’t he care?—the
upstart, with livery!”

No dust could have been so bad as the Grey dust, and the judge went on
grumbling until the obnoxious carriage turned into a by-street, leaving
the road unobstructed.

Arrived at home, Mr. Grey tried to seem natural, and joked Louie about
her new dresses, which she could not help looking at, if it were Sunday;
but there was a glitter in his eyes and a drawn look about his mouth
which his wife remembered afterward and understood. When dinner was over
he said he was going for a walk, to see if it would not clear his head,
which felt a little heavy. Taking a circuitous route, he came at last to
the house of Lawyer Blake, a personal friend whom he could trust, and
who had done business for him. There was no hesitancy now on his part,
and his manner was cool and collected as he began:

“I am totally ruined! Bank will be closed to-morrow, and I have come to
you for advice.”

Mr. Blake looked at him in astonishment, as he went on; “I don’t know
much about such matters, but I suppose there must be an assignee, and I
want you for that and want you to see to things generally. There’ll be a
terrible row—worse than the White’s—and I feel as if I were losing my
mind.”

The lawyer asked no questions as to how it had happened. He thought he
knew, and promised to do whatever he could.

“Have you thought of preferred creditors? Are there none whom you wish
to have paid in full?” he asked.

“It is a farce to name any,” Mr. Grey replied. “There is so little that
to select a big depositor would be wrong. But, yes”—and in his eyes
there was a laugh as he saw the absurdity of what he was about to
suggest—“I will name one—old Nancy Sharp.”

“Nancy Sharp!” the lawyer repeated in surprise. “Are you crazy?”

“Very nearly so,” Mr. Grey replied; “but Nancy shall be the one. She
took twenty dollars from White’s Bank, and put them into mine, where she
already had a small sum. I have them intact yet, with her private mark
upon them, and I want you to pay her back the same dollars. She has
added small sums from time to time—put in five dollars yesterday—and now
has in all some seventy-five dollars. I have quite a regard for Nancy.
She’ll lead the mob, if there is one, and show fight, too!”

Nothing the lawyer said could dissuade Mr. Grey from his purpose, and he
gave it up, and Nancy’s name went in as the sole preferred creditor.

For an hour or more the interview lasted, and at its close the
preliminary steps for the closing of the bank had been decided; the
assignment was drawn ready for execution the next morning, and Mr. Grey
went home in quite a cheerful state of mind.

Now that he had made a beginning, and the burden was in a way shifted
from his shoulders to another’s, he felt better. It was not often that
Mrs. Grey attended service in the evening, and as it was so warm, Louie
decided to remain at home. Mr. Grey, however, went, and shook hands with
a good many people, and appeared so affable and friendly and talked and
laughed so much that it was commented upon by his friends and remembered
afterwards as a sign that he was a little off in his brain. When service
was over, he walked part way home with a neighbor, then saying
good-night, he went to his bank, and, locking the door and lighting the
gas, took a sheet of foolscap, and with a blue crayon wrote upon it in
letters which could be read across the street: “THIS BANK CLOSED FOR THE
PRESENT.”

He made two or three copies before he was suited. “I want it so plain
that he who runs may read,” he said, holding the paper off to get the
effect. “This will do. This will catch their eyes the first thing in the
morning,” he said, and pinning the paper on the wall sat staring at it
until the letters were like blue tongues before his eyes. Many times he
repeated the words, “THIS BANK IS CLOSED FOR THE PRESENT,” until they
burned like fire in his brain, and he laughed aloud as he thought of the
consternation they would produce and the rapidity with which the news
would spread, and the crowd it would bring to the spot. He could not put
the paper outside that night, for the moonlight would betray him. It
must be done in the early morning, before anyone was up.

“And I shall be here at the opening of the play,” he said, as with a
last glance at the blue letters he put out the gas, locked the door and
started for home, wondering why his legs trembled so and why he felt so
weak.

Once he sat down on a bench by the side of the road near his home with a
feeling that his strength was gone.

“This will never do. If I die, I’ll die game,” he said at last, and
rousing up and pulling himself together he walked very steadily to his
house, finding both his wife and Louie waiting for him with a tempting
little lunch on the dining-room table.

“Service was either very long, or you have been somewhere. It is nearly
ten o’clock,” Louie said, as she gave him the cup of cocoa which he
usually had on Sunday nights after church.

“I’ve been somewhere,” he said, taking the cocoa and compelling himself
to eat and to talk and seem natural, and when lunch was over, he asked
Louie to sing him something before she retired.

“What shall it be?” she said, seating herself at the piano.

“Oh, anything,” he answered. “Or, yes, I think I’d like

              ‘Abide with me; fast falls the eventide;
              The darkness deepens; Lord, with me abide.’

That will suit my case.”

Louie did not hear the last remark, and her sweet, clear voice rang out
in the evening air with the song her father had chosen. Sometimes he
sang with her, but now he only whispered to himself, “Yes, the darkness
deepens, and it is so dark, and I don’t believe the Lord would abide
with me if I asked him to. It’s too late for that.”

It was almost a prayer, and whether God heard or not there stole over
the wretched man a sense of quiet and rest. The tension of his nerves
relaxed. His head drooped, and when Louie finished singing and turned
towards him, she saw that he was asleep.

“Poor, tired father,” she said, rousing him very gently, while he looked
at her in a bewildered kind of way and asked, “Is it to-morrow yet, and
has the mail come?”

“Almost to-morrow, as it is nearly eleven, and time you were in bed.
Mother went long ago,” Louie replied.

He was fully awake now, and getting up from his chair he stooped over
Louie to give her the good-night kiss which he never omitted.

“God bless you, daughter,” he said, putting his hands on her shoulders
and looking her steadily in the face; “God bless you, and whatever
happens, remember I thought only of your happiness and your mother’s.
Good-night.”

He kissed her again, and went slowly to his room, while Louie looked
after him wonderingly.

“Something is the matter. He is not well. I must speak to mother in the
morning and have him see a doctor,” she thought, as she, too, went to
her room and was soon asleep, with no suspicion of what the morrow was
to bring.

Mr. Grey could not sleep. There was work for him to do, and it must be
done early, before the town was awake.

Fortunately his wife slept very soundly, and did not hear him when, just
as the day was dawning, he rose stealthily and made his way to the bank,
meeting no one but a half-drunken man reeling home after a night’s
debauch. He recognized Mr. Grey, and half staggering against him
hiccoughed out, “Evenin’, Mr. Grey. Been on a lark same’s I have. Wall,
all right. I ‘low, and everybody ‘lows you are a good feller” (the man
prefixed an adjective to the good, which made it sound like an oath);
“good, honest feller. Yes, sir. My wife Sally has some money in your
bank and knows it’s safe. Yes, sir, she does. Wall, good-night. I must
be goin’, or Sally will lam me for bein’ late; but if I tell her I met
Mr. Grey it’ll be all right. Yes, sir, all right. Sally swears by you,
she does. By-by.”

The man moved on a few rods and then fell sprawling upon the walk, where
he lay like a log. For an instant Mr. Grey looked at him, half resolving
to go to his aid. But time was passing, and he had work to do before the
sun was up. The man’s words of commendation and assurance of Sally’s
trust in him stung him to the quick. Everybody trusted him, but that
trust was soon to be destroyed, and Sally, who he knew was a
hard-working woman, would lose her little hoard.

“It is such people I am most sorry for,” he said, clenching his fists in
an agony of remorse and trembling so that he could hardly unlock the
door of the bank. It was dark inside, but he did not need a light. He
knew where the blue words were. There were tacks and a hammer in one of
the drawers, and the paper which was to fire the town was soon fastened
upon one of the outside doors.

“I’ll stay and see it begin,” he said, and, returning to the office and
locking the door, he took out the revolver he had brought with him, and
again asked himself if he should end it all, as he could do in a second.

When before he had been thus tempted it was a dead face which stopped
him. Now it was Louie’s, his fair, sweet daughter. What would she say to
find him there, with his brains bespattering the floor, and where would
he be when she found him?

“No, I can’t do it,” he said. “Better State’s prison than hell, where
suicides go. Maybe I can repent and be forgiven, and maybe it won’t be
State prison. I’ll risk it, anyway.”

He returned the pistol to his pocket and lay down upon the couch,
wondering who would be the first to see the words which danced before
his eyes like the blue flames of perdition.

He had not slept well for weeks, and for two nights he had not slept at
all except the few minutes when Louie was singing to him. Nature could
endure no longer, and he fell at last into a sleep so heavy that he did
not waken until there was the sound of many voices outside, and he knew
the mob was there, clamoring to get in. Sick with fear, he thought again
of his revolver, when he heard Louie calling to him:

“Father, father! are you here? Let me in. It is Louie.”




                              CHAPTER XIII
                               THE CRASH


The first to see the blue letters was a milkman driving his wagon into
town. At first he thought it some advertisement such as was often posted
in conspicuous places, and wondered a little to see it where it was.
Then, as he drew near enough to read it, he nearly fell over among his
cans, while his hair seemed rising on his head. He was one of those who
had taken his money from the National and deposited it in Grey’s Bank,
where there were now nearly one hundred and fifty dollars. Not a large
sum, but representing a great deal to him—a new range his wife had set
her heart upon, and his winter’s coal; a new overcoat for Johnny, and
one for himself, and so on. The whole list came up before him as his
lips formed the words, “This bank closed,” but gave no sound. Men have
lost their thousands and never felt it more keenly than the milkman, who
did not notice that his horse had started on, thinking he had been long
enough in one place. The first stop was near by, and as the maid came
out with her bowl the milkman said to her with long-drawn breaths:

“Grey’s Bank has busted! Got anything in it?”

In a moment the bowl, milk and all, were on the walk, and the girl was
staring open-mouthed across the street at the placard on the door.

“Failed! Burst! and my money gone! It can’t be,” and she began to cry,
while the milkman drove on, carrying the news with him, until every
house on his beat knew it, and half-dressed men, and women, too, were in
the street, hurrying towards the bank, as they had done on the morning
of the great run.

The cashier, who boarded near by and had just risen, was pounced upon to
tell what he knew. He knew nothing, except that funds were rather low,
as they had been several times when the bank had righted again.

“Good heavens! I ain’t to blame,” he said to the excited crowd, which
looked as if about to lay violent hands on him. “I can’t help it. I
didn’t know it,” and he started for the street, putting on his coat as
he ran.

By this time there was quite a crowd of people around the bank, reading
the notice and giving vent to their feelings as they read.

“Let us in,” some said to the cashier; but he knew better than that, and
shook his head.

“I haven’t the key. Wait for the boss,” he said.

“Where is he? Where’s Grey? Call him up. We want to know what he has to
say for himself,” was heard on every side, while two or three rushed to
a store near by, where there was a telephone, each trying to reach it
first.

“Leave it to me,” the cashier said, and the Central was rung up and
“Grey at his house” called for, while “Halloo!” soon came in response,
in Louie’s voice.

“I want your father,” the cashier screamed in his excitement, and Louie
replied:

“He is not here. We don’t know where he is. What is the matter?”

“The bank is closed—failed! Where can he be?” was shouted, but Louie
didn’t answer.

She had dropped insensible upon the floor, where the housemaid found her
a few minutes later. Her mother had missed her father, and was making
inquiries for him when the message came through the ‘phone, bringing
alarm and dismay and an insight into some things which had seemed
strange of late.

It did not take long to restore Louie to consciousness, and in a few
minutes she was on her wheel, speeding away to the bank, where she felt
her father was.

On her way she passed the White House, and glanced towards it with a
thought of Herbert, and what he would say and do, and with a thought,
too, of Fred Lansing on the ocean that summer day, with no suspicion of
what was transpiring in Merivale. This she did not know, as she had not
heard what the judge said to Herbert when he gave him Fred’s letter the
day before.

The village was thoroughly roused by this time, and the country, too. No
one could tell who carried it, but the news had reached Godfrey Sheldon,
as he was washing himself in a tin basin by the well, and thinking what
a hot day it was going to be for him to drive to an adjoining town to
pay for some oxen and a Jersey cow, the money for which he must get from
Grey’s Bank. To say that he swore is putting it mildly, and between his
swearing and excitement he emptied the tin basin into the well and
finished his ablutions in the pail of water drawn for the house. He
called himself a fool for leaving so much in the bank as he ran his
horse into town, hoping against hope, and finding that the worst had
happened when he saw the notice on the door and the crowd in the street.

“Heavens and earth!” he exclaimed, clutching first one and then another.
“How much do you s’pose he’ll pay on the dollar? or be we tee-totally
swamped?”

Nobody answered him. Nobody knew. Each was intent upon himself, and
Nancy Sharp was the most intent of all. She had heard the news in
White’s Row, where as usual on Monday morning she was busy over her
washtub. For a moment she seemed paralyzed, and stood with her mouth
wide open and a wet towel dangling high in the air and dripping up her
arms and down to the floor. Then she started for the scene of action,
outrunning every one who joined her. If she was excited at the great
run, she was now a howling hyena, threatening to tear out Grey’s heart
if she could get at him.

“All my savings in hard, round silver dollars gone, and wasn’t it only
Saturday I put in the last, and he took it—the wretch, knowin’ he was
busted!” she said, and this was the plaint of three or four more who had
hurried to place their money with the man they trusted, and for whom now
there were not names bad enough.

Even Louie, the favorite of the town, was greeted with a low hiss from
some quarter as she rode into their midst and, dismounting, said:

“Hasn’t father appeared? He must be in the bank. Open the door,
somebody.”

She looked helplessly round, while many voices cried:

“Yes, open the door, and bring him out and make him tell us what he has
done with our money, or we’ll hang him up on a tree,” one brutal fellow,
who had only twenty dollars in the bank, said.

“Easy enough to tell. Spent it in fine carriages, and horses, and
diamonds, and pianos, and party gowns,” some one replied.

“And hundred-dollar bicycles!” was added, with a glance at Louie, who
was leaning on her wheel, sick at heart as she heard what was said, and
thought how soon the loss of money would transform seeming friends into
cruel foes.

She had beckoned the cashier to her, and asked for a key. On being told
that her father had both, she said:

“I am sure he is here. He is not at home. We must get to him somehow.”

She did not think of suicide, or that he was asleep. He was there, and
afraid to come out, and she kept calling to him, “Father, let me in! It
is Louie!” while there fell a kind of hush upon the people waiting for
the answer, and pressing into the rear yard near the door.

“Oh, keep back, please,” she said, as she heard her father trying to
unlock the door.

“Not much back. I’m going to have my silver dollars—seventy-five of ’em!
He can’t have spent ’em all since Saturday night,” Nancy Sharp screamed,
crowding up to the door, which was opened slowly, disclosing a face
before which the crowd recoiled, it was so corpse-like and haggard, with
a wild look in the bloodshot eyes, and a tremor about the lips which
tried to smile as Mr. Grey said:

“Good-morning, friends. Excuse me for not coming to you before. I must
have overslept. Please let my daughter in a moment, and I’ll come out
and explain, or Lawyer Blake will do it for me. Isn’t he here?”

He had listened for the muttering of the storm, and when it came and
increased in violence and he knew that a crowd was gathering in the
street and would soon be clamoring for him, all his courage left him,
and as the angry voices grew louder and there were kicks and thumps on
the door, with cries for Grey to show himself, he cowered in a corner in
abject fear of what awaited him beyond the heavy doors of his bank. Was
there no friend outside? No one to stand between him and bodily harm? he
was asking himself, when Louie’s voice came to him like a pæan of
safety. No one would touch him with her at his side, and summoning all
his courage he unlocked the door, greeted the people with his old-time
courtesy, and asked for Lawyer Blake, who had just arrived, and with the
cashier and Louie entered the room, the door of which was closed.

“Good-morning, Blake,” Mr. Grey said, as if it were an ordinary meeting.
“I suppose you have brought that paper. Get at it, please, while I have
my wits. That noise outside drives me half crazy.”

The paper was hastily produced, signed by Mr. Grey, and acknowledged
before the cashier as notary and delivered to Mr. Blake.

“There, that’s over,” Mr. Grey said, “and now please step into the front
room. I must speak to Louie.”

They left him alone with his daughter, who stood gazing at him in
horror, he was so changed. Alone with her he broke down entirely, and
covering his face with his hands, sobbed like a child, while she
regarded him fixedly and almost sternly.

“Oh, Louie,” he began feebly and in a whisper, “I dreaded you more than
any one else—more than your mother. She is my wife and must stand by me
and will not feel it as keenly as you, who have thought me so perfect.
Oh, Louie, when I kissed you last night, I thought it might be for the
last time. Let me sit down and I’ll tell you about it.”

He tottered to the couch, and she came and stood beside him, listening
while he told her of his speculations, first with his own money and then
with the depositors’; and how, when funds were needed for the house, he
had drawn from the bank, when he had none there which lawfully belonged
to him.

“And that isn’t the worst,” he said, as if resolved to make a clean
breast of it; “it was not always stocks. It was regular gambling at the
last. You asked me once if I were a gambler. I told you no. I wasn’t
then. I have been since. I had a friend in New York who for a percentage
did it for me with money I sent him—sometimes my own but oftener other
people’s. Sometimes he won; sometimes he lost, and latterly it was more
loss than gain. Everything was loss. I expected a big sum yesterday
which would have put me on my feet, and had sworn to be an honest man if
it came. I did, Louie, and I prayed in church all the time that it might
come, and I’d begin new. The news came, and it was ruin. Your money is
safe. I couldn’t let you lose that, and I took one hundred and fifty
dollars from the funds and put away for you.”

There were little spots of red in the eyes which flashed angrily as
Louie exclaimed, “I shall not touch it! I shall share with the rest! I
can afford to lose far better than many of them!”

To this Mr. Grey made no reply, but continued: “I’ve made Blake my
assignee. I saw him yesterday, and I made Nancy Sharp a preferred
creditor. It’s a big joke,” and he laughed as he thought of the joke.
Then he went on: “Stand by me, Louie. No matter how bad I am, I am your
father, and love you so much. Don’t let them send me to prison. They can
do it if they want to. And don’t look so at me,” he added, as Louie’s
face grew paler and her eyes darker with a look she had never given him
before, and from which he shrank. “I thought to end my life last night,
and again this morning, but a thought of you restrained me. I have the
means—see!” and held up the revolver, while Louie drew back from him a
moment.

Then, with a quick movement she took it from him, and said:

“Father, would you kill yourself? Shame on you! Better State’s prison
than that. I would rather think of you a felon than a suicide. How many
balls are there in it?”

“Three,” he answered, and in rapid succession three reports rang through
the room, the balls entering the floor, at which they were aimed.

Outside there was comparative quiet, for Mr. Blake had left the bank by
the front door, and was explaining as well as he could, and advising the
people to go home. Everything would be settled in time, and matters
might not be as bad as they seemed. Mr. Grey would do everything he
could for them, and they could do no good hanging round the bank.

“But we want to see Grey, and give him a piece of our mind,” several
said.

These were mostly the small depositors who, like the milkman, had lost
their all. One woman had laid by thirty dollars for some teeth to be
made that week and she wrung her hands in despair over her loss.

Nancy Sharp was worst of all, and tore round like a wild beast, shaking
her fists and threatening all sorts of harm if once “she got that Grey
in her clutches.” At last she grew so violent and noisy that Mr. Blake
whispered to her,

“Be quiet, Nancy! you are the preferred creditor!”

Just what a preferred creditor meant, Nancy did not know, until Mr.
Blake explained what it was, and that she would be paid in full. She
understood that, and from a tigress, ready to tear Mr. Grey in pieces,
she became at once a lamb so far as he was concerned, and ready to do
battle with all who were censuring him.

It was at this point that the pistol shots were heard, sending
consternation through the crowd, which could not be kept back any
longer. The cashier, who had been standing guard at the door outside,
opened it, and a few of those nearest to him rushed in, expecting at
least to find Mr. Grey dead and possibly his daughter. What they found
was Louie with the smoking revolver in her hand, and her father lying
upon the couch, white and still as a corpse.

“Go back,” she said, advancing towards them. “No one is hurt. I have
made that impossible. See!” and she pointed to the three bullet holes in
the floor.

“Yes, go back, you spalpeens, and mind your business,” Nancy Sharp
cried, plunging into the crowd, which she shoved right and left until
the room was cleared of all but Mr. Blake and the cashier, who had
re-entered it.

“You must get your father home. I have telephoned to have the carriage
sent. It will soon be here,” the latter said.

Louie scarcely heard him. Her ears were strained to catch a voice she
did not hear, and her eyes were looking through the open door for a face
she did not see. Where was Herbert in this her hour of trouble, and
would he not come to her?

This was a question she had asked herself many times during the terrible
ordeal through which she had passed. He must have heard the news.
Everybody had, it seemed, and why did he not come to her. Of course all
was over between them now that this disgrace had come upon her. Her
father _was_ a gambler, and remembering what Herbert had once said to
her on that subject, she could not expect him to be loyal to her.

“But he might come and speak to me for the sake of what has been,” she
thought, and her lip quivered and she had hard work to keep back her
tears.

“’Tother bank is open. Maybe the judge will help out as Mr. Grey helped
him,” she heard someone saying.

But she knew better than to expect that. Judge White would not help her
father, and could not now if he would. It was too late for that. The
crash had come. Failure was declared. The mob was there howling for
their money, and she was left alone to battle with the wild storm
without a sympathetic face or word to cheer her. If the White Bank was
open Herbert was probably there, or would be soon, and then he _will_
come, she said to herself over and over again as the minutes passed and
still he did not come. Where was he?

Breakfast at the White House was always late, and the family were at the
table when the news reached them, brought by the servant, who, after
passing the coffee, said:

“The Grey Bank has burst and the street is full of people.”

“What!” both the Judge and Herbert exclaimed together, the former
putting his coffee down so quickly that some of it was spilled on the
cloth.

The girl repeated her news with additions and told how she knew it.
There could be no mistake, and although he would not like to acknowledge
it, the Judge was only conscious of a stir of exultation, such as mean
natures feel when misfortune has befallen a rival. He certainly did not
seem greatly disturbed as he said:

“Bust at last, has he? I told you so. I knew he couldn’t go on cutting
such a swell and kicking up such a dust as he did yesterday. I haven’t
got it out of my eyes and throat yet.”

The dust of the Grey carriage was the last grievance, and the Judge
dwelt upon it, while Herbert looked at him in surprise.

“Father,” he said, at last, “never mind the dust. Think of the trouble
Mr. Grey is in; can’t you help him?”

“Can’t I help him?” the Judge repeated. “Help him—how? Pay his debts?
No, sir! He has made his bed and must lie on it!”

“But he helped us,” Herbert continued.

“I know he did,” his father replied, “but played right into his own
pocket. We were honest, and not to blame for the run, while I’ll be
hanged if I think he is honest. I wonder how Sheldon feels now. Serves
him right, and the rest of ’em. I don’t believe he’ll pay ten cents on a
dollar. He can’t, spending as he has—dressing up his wife and that girl.
I am sorry for her; but s’posin’ your tomfooling with her had amounted
to something, where’d you be now.”

“Just where I’m going,” Herbert said, leaving the room and going for his
wheel, on which he rode rapidly to Mr. Grey’s house, expecting to find
Louie there.

The maid told him she was at the bank, and that Mrs. Grey was in
hysterics, with two physicians attending her.

Herbert started at once for the bank, where he heard a wonderful story.

Louie had stayed there all night with her father, who had tried to kill
himself, and would have done so if Louie had not snatched the revolver
from him and fired it off, wounding him, it was said. She was with him
now, and the lawyer and cashier were with her and no one else was
allowed to go in.

Herbert did not believe the first of the story, but was glad of the
last, for if no one was allowed in the bank, he would not be expected to
go in. He was sorry for Louie, but too cowardly to identify himself very
prominently with her in the face of this trouble and before the curious
world. Fear of his father restrained him, and although he expressed
himself strongly as sorry for Mr. Grey, and even asserted his belief
that he would pay every indebtedness in time, he made no effort to enter
the bank, but hovered near the door, hoping to get a sight of Louie, and
hearing her voice once as she said:

“I wish the carriage would come. Will they molest father, do you think,
when they see him?”

Then all his manhood rose to the surface. Molest Louie’s father! He
guessed not, when he was there, and he waited for the carriage and
talked to the crowd, which, in some respects, was different from that on
the day of the run. Then there had at first been fierce anger, which had
resolved itself into excitement and haste when it was known that the
money was forthcoming. Here the anger was more intense because more
quiet. The case was probably a hopeless one—they would never get their
money—and some of the men had a dangerous look as they spoke together in
low tones and watched the entrance to the rear yard to the bank.

When the Grey carriage came up, there was a murmur like the low
muttering of distant thunder, and Herbert drew near to the gate, around
which some of the most angry men were standing.

But whatever the people felt was kept down by the sight of the man, who
had aged ten years since they saw him. All his elasticity and erectness
of figure was gone, and he stooped as he walked, with Louie and the
cashier on either side of him.

The crowd was very quiet as it watched him with something like pity in
their hearts. Then suddenly a stone crashed against the side of the
carriage and bounded off upon the walk. Then a second followed, hitting
one of the horses and making him rear upon his hind feet. The stones
came from the same group of boys who, during the run, had shouted
themselves hoarse for Grey, the honest banker, and given three groans
for Old Money Bags. Now Grey was down, and Money Bags was up, and the
boys were carrying out the brutal instincts of their class.

“It’s a shame!” Herbert said, starting for the boys; but Nancy Sharp was
there before him, her brawny arms scattering the boys right and left,
and her big hand seizing one by the hair and holding him fast while she
shook him vigorously.

The preferred creditor business was bearing fruit and the volubility of
her tongue was something wonderful. She was sure of her money—Mr. Blake
had said so—and Mr. Grey was a “misfortunate man whom she would not see
insulted.”

Something in her attitude shamed Herbert, who went at once to Louie’s
side and said to her:

“I cannot tell you how sorry I am. Let me help your father.”

“Oh, Herbert,” Louie cried, “I am so glad you have come. I wanted you so
badly—wanted somebody to help me bear it. No one has said a kind word
but Nancy Sharp.”

“I came as soon as I heard of it. I went to your house first,” Herbert
said, offering again to help her father.

But she did not relinquish her hold. She only put her hand on Herbert’s
arm to steady herself, she felt so faint.

Not until he was in the carriage did Mr. Grey seem conscious of the
crowd. Then he lifted his hat and bowed, while a smile broke over his
pallid features and his lips moved as if he would speak. Louie saw it
and whispered, “Don’t father. Don’t say anything now. It can do no
good.”

Then she turned to Herbert, who helped her in and held her hand a moment
with a warm pressure which she felt during all the rapid drive home—past
stores and shops, and houses, from which curious faces were looking, as
if Mr. Grey were some new species of the genus homo which they had never
seen before.

Louie had half hoped Herbert would go with her, and for a moment he had
thought to do so. But his father had just come up, puffing and blowing
with heat and impatience, and glad that the thing was over and Grey
going quietly home.

“This must seem kinder nateral to you, seein’ ’tain’t long sence you was
in the same boat,” Nancy Sharp said, as she elbowed her way up to him.

The Judge glared at her, but made no reply. He had never forgotten the
poor old man whom she pitied, and had raised her rent a dollar a month
in consequence of the part she had played in the run. He knew her twenty
silver dollars were in Grey’s bank, and did not feel particularly sorry
for her. She had lost it, of course, and after he passed her something
impelled him to turn and say, “How much are you out?”

“Not a red cent,” she answered. “I’m a preferred creditor, I be. Mr.
Grey done the square thing by me, same as he did by you, and here in his
trouble you stalk away without a word to these folks thet they’d better
go home. I’ve been advisin’ ’em, but they won’t hear me.”

For a moment the judge hesitated. He did not want them standing around
in front of his bank. It reminded him too much of a day he would like to
forget, and he finally said, “What are you waiting for? You can’t get
your money to-day, if you ever do. You’d better go home. There’s no good
standing here, gaping at the bank!”

Most of them took his advice, and went home with heavy hearts as they
thought of their hard earnings gone through the recklessness of a man
they had trusted implicitly, and who was lying in his own house, white
and still as the dead, speaking to no one and only answering in
monosyllables when spoken to.

He had not seen his wife. The physicians did not think it best, as she
was growing quiet when he came, and the sight of him would set her off
again with hysterics, which, complicated with heart trouble, might prove
serious.

Louie had a double task, caring for her father and mother, and she faced
it bravely. She saw Mr. Blake when he came in the afternoon and heard
from him how little there was left of the wreck, and asked for a list of
the depositors, especially the smaller ones—the working women and men to
whom their loss meant more than to Godfrey Sheldon. She called the four
servants together—the coachman and cook and laundress and housemaid—and
said to them:

“We can pay you up to Saturday night. After that we can’t afford it, and
you must go.”

“What will you do?” they asked, and she replied:

“I am young and strong. I can get along somehow.”

The coachman and laundress knew they were not necessary, but the cook
and housemaid felt that they were, and said:

“We will stay a few days, and matters may brighten.”

Louie thanked them, but knew that things would not brighten. She had
talked with her mother, and made her understand how poor they were, and
won her consent to sell everything which belonged to them, and pay the
small depositors as far as possible. She was reckoning on paper how much
the house and furniture and horses and carriage and diamonds and piano
and plate would probably bring, when Herbert was announced. The moment
she was alone with him Louie began to cry. Then, repressing her tears,
she said, “It was kind in you to come. I knew you would, but you know
everything is ended now.”

“What do you mean?” Herbert asked, pretending not to understand her.

“I mean,” she said, with a catch between every breath, “I cannot expect
you to think of me as you have done, after what has happened. You asked
me once if father was a gambler, and I was very angry. Now, I am too
hurt to be angry at anyone. I feel as if every nerve was bruised with a
sudden blow. We shall never rise above this disgrace, and you must not
share it. You cannot. You are free, except as a friend. I do want you
for that. Oh, Herbert!”

She broke down a little, then rallied, and her eyes bright with tears
looked at the young man, who was silent a moment; then he said, “You
mistake me if you think I wish to be free. I do not, but am so hedged in
that I cannot do what I ought to do—come out openly as your future
husband and stand by you. Father is like a raging lion. I must give him
time to cool, and then I’ll tell him the truth, but give you up—never!”

He meant what he said, but he seemed depressed, and his visit was on the
whole unsatisfactory, as he had no comfort to offer, except that others
had failed besides Mr. Grey and come out all right, and that in any
event he should love her always. He had not passed a very happy day, but
he did not tell her so, or of the wild stories afloat with regard to the
failure and its cause. Speculation and gambling were words freely used,
and from being the most popular man in town, Mr. Grey was dragged so low
that Louie would have shuddered had she heard all that was said of him.
Herbert had heard, but what affected him most was his father’s attitude.

“Sorry? Of course I am. I am always sorry for the dog that is under, and
Grey is so far under that he’ll never get up again,” he said to some men
who were discussing the failure. “I always guessed he wasn’t square, and
now I know it. There’s a family come to town, who lived in Denver. Quiet
folks, who mind their own business. They didn’t know Grey personally,
but they heard of him as a gambler. Yes, sir—a gambler, who kept a room
on purpose for it, where young men went and old ones, too. They weren’t
going to blab, but they’ve told it now he’s burst. Yes, sir—a gambler,
and has kept it up with other folks’ money, I’ll bet you, and see what
he’s got by it.”

This was told in the bank, while to Herbert, when alone, he said:

“See what your fooling with that girl would have come to if you had gone
on. I haven’t been so blind as you think, and I know you’ve been with
her a sight. Nice enough girl, but Tom Grey’s daughter—a man who may go
to State’s prison. There’s that in the air, already, headed by Sheldon,
who is madder’n a March hare. Serves him right, and Blake don’t give
much hope of a dividend. I tell you, if things between you and that girl
had amounted to anything, you’d been in a hole; and if you’d stuck to
her, by the Lord Harry, I’d cut you off! Yes, sir!”

Had Herbert been Fred Lansing, he would have said to his father: “Louie
Grey is my promised wife, and I shall stand by her.”

But he was not Fred Lansing, and he made no reply, although tempted to
blurt out the truth. He had no thought of giving Louie up, but he had
not the moral courage to face the storm by her side, and she was left to
stem the tide alone.




                              CHAPTER XIV
                            LOUIE’S COURAGE


A week passed, and the town was full of rumors of every description.
That the assets could not begin to meet the liabilities was a certainty,
and the losers were furious. Mr. Grey was called a liar, a cheat, a
spendthrift and gambler, who had used the money of the poor to enrich
himself.

A little lull occurred when it was known that his house was for sale,
with his horses and carriage, his wife’s and Louie’s diamonds, the grand
piano, and Louie’s wheel, and that the proceeds were to go toward
liquidating the debts.

“That’s fair, and they or’to pay me first,” Godfrey Sheldon said, when
he heard of it. “All them gimcracks without the house, will bring more’n
two thousand dollars, the sum I have in the bank now. Fool that I didn’t
take it all out. I’ll go at once and see ’em.”

Harnessing his horse, he drove to the Greys’ residence and asked to see
Mr. Grey. It was Louie who met him and told him her father was ill, and
saw no one but Mr. Blake and the doctor.

“Then I’ll see your mother,” Mr. Sheldon said.

“She is ill, too,” was Louie’s reply.

“Well, who in thunder can I see?” was the next question, roughly spoken.

“Me!” Louie answered, with quiet dignity. “What can I do for you?”

“Pay me my two thousand dollars,” was the rude reply, which brought the
hot blood to Louie’s face; but she answered calmly:

“I wish we might, but it is impossible at present.”

“Why impossible? I hear your house, with its fixin’s, is for sale. Is
that so?” Mr. Sheldon asked.

“Yes, that is so.”

“And they belong to your mother, or you?”

“Yes, to mother.”

“Horses, and carriages, and all?”

“Yes.”

“And the pianner, and wheel, and diamonds?”

“Yes—the piano and wheel were mine, and are already sold, the diamonds
are in Boston, to be disposed of.”

“Jess so. I call that honest on your part. They all or’to fetch a nice
sum, and don’t you think that, as the biggest creditor, I or’to be paid
out of it? I do.”

It seemed to Mr. Sheldon that Louie grew two inches in height as she
replied:

“The money will belong to mother and me, to do with as we please, and we
shall pay the small depositors first—the poor people, who worked hard
for their money, and cannot afford to lose it. What is left will go in
with the assets, and you will have your share.”

“Heavens and earth! Do you think I can afford to lose two thousand
dollars? No, sir!” Mr. Sheldon exclaimed, beginning to get angry.
“Assets! There won’t be any, if the truth is told; the way you’ve
lived—four servants, and two bath-rooms, with porcelain tubs. I s’pose
you keep ’em still—the hired help, I mean.”

“I don’t know that you have any business to ask me that question,” Louie
said, with a gleam in her eyes which warned the rude man that he was
going too far.

“Mebby I hain’t,” he replied, “but when a man has lost two thousand
dollars, he don’t feel very fine, I tell you. Look a here, girl,” he
continued, as Louie showed signs of leaving him, “I want them horses and
carriage. Name a fair price, and I’ll take ’em, turnin’ it toward my
debt, and mebby I’ll take the house if the figger ain’t too high.”

Louie shook her head. “The poor men and women must be paid first. I have
already paid some with my piano and wheel money,” she said.

Finding that he could not move her, and must take his chance with the
rest, Mr. Sheldon left the house in a very angry state of mind. When
Judge White slighted him he had taken his revenge by withdrawing his
money from the bank and creating a panic. Now he had no money to
withdraw. It was gone—lost—and he had no redress, unless he took it on
Grey himself.

“And he deserves it,” he said, as he drove into the village. “He or’to
be made to tell what he did with the money, and then sent to prison.
I’ll do my best to get him there, too.”

It did not take long for Mr. Sheldon to bring others beside himself into
his state of mind. Something should be done to Grey, who was probably
shamming sickness to keep out of sight. They’d call a meeting, anyway,
and decide what to do.

The meeting was called for the next night, and, as it was not kept
secret, the news reached Louie in the morning, brought by Nancy Sharp,
who, having espoused the cause of the Greys, was taking the place of the
cook, who had left, and kept them posted with whatever was being said or
done in town, thinking it a kindness to do so. On this occasion her
report was, of course, exaggerated. There was to be a meeting of the
creditors in the village hall that night at half-past eight, she said,
and they were going to decide when to arrest Mr. Grey and take him to
prison; probably it would be the next day, or two days later at the
farthest.

Lottie was white as death when she heard it. She had just come from her
father’s room, where, since the day of the failure, he had lain, with
his hands folded on his breast, his eyes closed, and seldom moving or
speaking, except to Louie and his wife, who had insisted upon being with
him, and was lying in the same room, almost as white and still as her
husband. The blow had struck her hard, for her love for and faith in her
husband had been great, and no suspicion whatever of his integrity had
ever entered her mind. Now, in the light of recent revelations, she had
begun to look backward, understanding some things which, in her
confiding and rather weak nature, she had scarcely thought of before.
Her love was the same for the erring man, but her faith in him was gone,
and when, with outstretched hands, he had said to her when they first
met, “Fanny! oh, Fanny, I am so sorry,” she had answered him, “Thomas,
how could you, when we trusted you so?” Then she had collapsed entirely
and gone into by hysterics, as she had done when she first heard the
news. Now, however, she was more calm, and stayed in the room with him,
while Louie ministered to them both.

On this morning, as if something had told him what was in the air, or
else because he was delirious, her father had roused a little and said
to her:

“Don’t let them, Louie. I shan’t last long, and it will do no good. It
will not bring back their money.”

Louie had returned from her interview with Nancy, and her face grew
whiter as she asked:

“Do what, father?”

“Oh-h, I don’t know. I think I was dreaming of prison and that they were
taking me there; but you will save me,” he moaned.

“Yes, father,” she said, kissing his pallid face. “I will save you. But
how?” she asked herself, while a thought of Herbert crossed her mind.

He had been there every day, or, rather, evening—for, like Nicodemus, he
chose the night for his visits, and it seemed to her that every time he
came he appeared more and more under constraint. Still, he was very
kind, and had said to her more than once:

“I am so sorry; and I wish I could help you. Command me if I can.”

Remembering this, there came into Louie’s mind the thought: “He can help
me. They will listen to him.”

She did not expect him till evening, and then it might be too late. She
could not go for him, but she could telephone, and she did, first to the
house, and then to the bank, from which the judge’s voice, asking, “Who
are you?” came back so loud that it made her start.

“Louie Grey,” was the response.

“What do you want?”

“I want Herbert.”

“The devil you do!” the judge said, in an aside; then, through the
‘phone, “He is in the street. What shall I tell him?”

“Please say that I want to see him at once. I am in great trouble,”
Louie answered, frankly and fearlessly, with no thought of the storm she
was provoking.

Taking his son into the rear office when he came in, the judge said to
him:

“Don’t you call it pretty brassy for a girl to send word to a young man
that she wants to see him at once?”

“What do you mean?” Herbert asked, with a thought of Louie.

“I mean that Grey girl has ‘phoned that she wants you at once. That
looks as if she had a claim, or thinks she has; and, by the Lord Harry,
if that is so, you are no son of mine. I’ve told you that a dozen times,
and I mean it, too. You must choose between me and that Grey girl.”

He did not ask direct questions, and Herbert was glad, for he could not
tell a square lie, and he dared not acknowledge his engagement. So he
listened in silence until his father paused a moment, and then replied:

“It is hardly worth your while to expend so much breath on me. I know
enough to study my own interest. But if Louie has sent for me, it
certainly would be very unmanly in me not to go to her. Remember what
she did for us.”

“I do remember, and if I didn’t it has been thrown in my face often
enough; but that is no reason why she should be my daughter-in-law, and
I tell you I won’t have it. No, sir; I won’t have it; and if you’ve got
entangled with the daughter of a gambler and a thief, and maybe a
State-prison bird, get disentangled, for I tell you I won’t have it!”
the judge answered, angrily, going from the room and leaving Herbert
alone.

It was very indiscreet in Louie to telephone, but he must go to her, he
thought, and he was soon at the house, asking why she had sent for him,
and why she was looking so terrified.

She was white as marble, and trembling like a leaf, for Nancy Sharp had
come with more news of the excitement in town, and of Godfrey Sheldon’s
threat to leave no stone unturned till Grey was punished.

“Oh, Herbert,” she said, bursting into tears and leaning her head on his
arm, “have you heard they are to meet to-night to talk about arresting
father?”

Herbert said he had heard something of the kind, but did not think it
was true.

“It is true,” Louie cried, in a tremor of distress, “and you must stop
it!”

“I stop it! How?” Herbert asked, and Louie replied:

“Go to the meeting, and plead for him. Tell them how sorry and broken he
is. Tell them it will all be paid in time, if I live. I can do it, and I
will. Tell them everything we have will be sold, if they will only leave
father alone. You will do this for me?”

She was looking at him now, with the tears running down her cheeks, and
her lips quivering with the pain it gave her to ask this of her lover,
whose hesitancy she saw before he spoke. If she had asked him to walk
through a fire he could have done it more readily than to attend the
meeting of angry citizens and plead for Mr. Grey. It would be too
marked, and life would be intolerable with his father when he heard it,
as he was sure to.

This he tried to explain, and Louie understood him, and knew she must
stand alone. There was no one to help her, and in her eyes, dry now, and
very bright, there was a look, which Herbert would never forget, and in
coming years he would give much if he could recall the words which had
brought it there.

“Father will be wanting me, and I must go to him,” she said, when he
tried to detain her while he explained, further why it would be of no
use for him to do her bidding. “I shall only be one against many, and I
am sorry to say some of the creditors have lost their good sense with
their money, and they would only laugh at me if I told them _you_ would
pay the debts. How can you do it?”

“I know,” was Louie’s reply, as she drew away from him.

He did not try to caress her. She would not have permitted it had he
tried. In her mind there was fast forming the idea that he was a weak
reed to lean upon—that her idol was falling from its pedestal, and there
was a constraint in her voice and manner as she bade him good-by and
went to her father, who was growing delirious and talking of stocks, and
prison, and a dead face with a bullet in the brain. This she did not
understand, unless it referred to his thought to kill himself. The
prison she understood, and tried to soothe and quiet him by saying he
would never go there—that she would save him from it. How she could do
it she scarcely knew. There seemed to be but one way. She must face that
night session alone, and beg them to spare her father. It was a terrible
ordeal, and she shrank from it with inexpressible dread, for she must do
it, and her resolution was kept up by the news Nancy Sharp brought her
at intervals during the day of the arrangements making for the session
and the intensity of feeling among the people as the sense of their
losses grew upon them.

“Don’t tell me any more, or I shall go crazy, and I need all my wits
about me,” Louie cried at last when Nancy came late in the afternoon
with more harassing details of what was being done in town.

“I done my best to shet ’em up,” Nancy said, “but land’s sake, ’tain’t
no use. They are jest ravin’. But I’d like to see ’em try to take your
father, sick as he is. They’d walk over my body fust, and I told ’em so,
but they jest laughed in my face, and that sneak of a Sheldon said it
was all very well for me, a preferred creditor, to feel that way, but if
I’d lost all he had I’d talk out of ‘tother side of my mouth. The hound!
He’s settin’ ’em on.”

Nancy was doing her duty religiously, and had been in two or three
fights with boys and innumerable quarrels with others in her zeal to
defend the Greys. And Louie knew it, and while she felt grateful for the
old woman’s kindness, she grew sick at heart and more and more nervous
as she thought of what she must do, and wondered how she could face a
set of men as excited and determined as Nancy represented them to be.
She had known them all as friends, and to meet them now as enemies was
hard to do, but she must do it.

As the sun went down a heavy rain began to fall, and the night closed in
dark and stormy, with gusts of wind which shook the house and bent the
trees and shrubs in the yard, breaking some of the smaller limbs and
scattering the leaves in showers. It was a wild night for any woman to
be out, and much less for a young girl like Louie. Her wheel was sold,
and, though the horses were still in the stable, she dared not take them
out, for Nancy Sharp had brought her rumors of stones and eggs laid up
for the carriage, should it appear in the street. She must walk and go
alone, for the one servant who had not left them must stay with her
father and mother, and she would not take Nancy with her.

Nancy had said the meeting was to be at half-past eight, and at
quarter-past she started in her waterproof cloak, the hood of which was
drawn over her head the better to shield her from the rain, and from
observation, too, as she did not care to be recognized by any she
chanced to meet.

There was little danger of her meeting anyone, for few were abroad that
night except the men who had the appointment at the village hall, and no
one noticed the slight figure moving rapidly through the street and
keeping as much as possible in the shadow until the hall was reached.

There was a light shining from the windows and streaming down upon the
walk where Louie stood for a moment, trying to gather courage for the
trial.

“God help me, and give me strength and success,” she said, and then
ascended the stairs to the upper hall, which was dimly lighted by a
defective gas jet.

In a little recess, where he was unobserved, a young man was standing,
or, rather, sitting, on a dry-goods box, motionless as a statue, and
with a curse in his heart for his own cowardice. He had been there a
long time, watching the men as they came up, now half resolving to join
them and do Louie’s bidding, and now held back by the fear of his
father, with whom there had been a second interview stormier than any
which had preceded it. At lunch the judge, who seemed unusually
irritable, had said to him:

“Did you go to see that Grey girl?”

“Yes, sir; I did,” was Herbert’s answer, and his father continued:

“More fool you! What did she want?”

He hesitated a moment and then replied, “She thought, perhaps, I could
do something to quiet the men who are to meet to-night to take steps
with regard to her father.”

For a moment the judge could not speak. His anger was so great that it
brought on a fit of coughing, and the big gulp of claret he had taken
was thrown out upon the napkin tucked under his chin.

“Strike me on the back, can’t you! and not sit staring at me while I
choke to death,” he gasped.

Herbert struck him on the back with so good effect that the paroxysm was
soon passed, and after two or three sneezes, he began:

“Great Peter! Why did you hit me so hard. You nearly broke my spine.
Mad, I s’pose, because I asked you about the Grey girl—a pretty kind of
modest piece, too, I must say, to think you’d appear as her advocate. I
like that! Yes, I do! Did you tell her you’d go? If you did and do go,
I’ve told you what’s what, and I mean it, too. Asked you to plead for
that wretch, who deserves State’s prison—if ever a feller did!”

“So do a great many who are not there,” Herbert answered, adding, “I did
not tell her I’d go. It would do no good, but it would be different with
you. They would listen to you if you advised them not to arrest Mr.
Grey. They would have to take him on a stretcher, he is so ill. I wish
you’d go, I know Fred Lansing would if he were here.”

Herbert was growing courageous as he talked, with a thought of Louie’s
face as it had looked at him an hour before. Something had brought Fred
Lansing to his mind with a wish that he were there. Fred would not
hesitate to brave the whole town, and, knowing the esteem in which he
was held by his father, Herbert had used his name as an argument. But
Fred was promptly consigned to perdition, and Herbert was sent after him
in very emphatic language, and the interview was closed by Herbert’s
leaving the table. He had intended going to Worcester that afternoon to
attend a concert in the evening, but he gave that up and went instead
into the town, dropping into three or four places of business,
ostensibly to look at something, or make some little purchase, but
really to hear if anything was said of the expected investigation. Only
once was allusion made to it or the failure, and then a dry-goods
merchant asked if he had heard there was to be a meeting of Mr. Grey’s
creditors that night?

“Yes,” he replied, “and I am sorry, and hope they will decide not to
molest him. It can do no good, and I suppose you know he is very ill.
They would never attempt to touch him in his present state. Give him
time if he lives, and I dare say he will try to pay every thing he
owes.”

This was quite a speech for Herbert in Mr. Grey’s behalf, and after he
had made it he felt that he had done a good thing for Louie, especially
as the merchant to whom he was talking and who was not a heavy loser by
the failure, replied, “That’s so. Grey is a good sort, and I don’t
s’pose he has done worse than hundreds of bankers are doing all the
time. He had bad luck and was caught, that’s all the difference. I had
only fifty in the bank, and I’d rather lose that than see him dragged to
prison as a few hot-heads seem to want to do; but I guess they won’t.”

There was comfort in this. Others might feel like this man. Matters were
not so threatening as Louie feared. There might not be a meeting after
all, and if there were nothing rash would be done. His presence was not
needed, even if he were willing to go, and reasoning thus Herbert went
home in a comparatively quiet state of mind. When dinner was over he
started again for the main street of the town. If there was to be a
meeting he would like to know it and see who attended it himself unseen.
He accordingly took his post in the dark alcove and watched to see who
came, wondering that there were so many and fearing a little for the
result. He heard Louie’s step as she came up the stairs, but did not
suspect who it was until as she stopped under the gas jet to shake the
water from her dripping cloak and push her damp hair from her forehead,
he saw her face, and nearly fell off the box in his surprise.

He knew why she was there, and his first impulse was to go to her and
stand by her and make her cause his own. Then, thinking that perhaps he
would go in later, and that she would produce a better effect at first
without him, he let her go alone, and felt himself growing cold and
dizzy, when the door opened and the light streamed for a moment out into
the hall, showing him several men inside, with Louie in their midst;
then the door was closed, and he was in darkness again.




                               CHAPTER XV
                              THE SESSION


Judge White had been consulted with regard to the meeting and asked to
attend it, but had declined, inasmuch as Mr. Grey only owed him for a
quarter’s rent. But he made no effort to restrain the people.

“The dog deserves it, for, of course, he’s been dishonest,” he said. “I
have been in the business long enough to know how it can be done, and I
always mistrusted he was up to it.”

This did not help matters, and, stormy as was the night, a dozen men or
more were in the hall by half-past eight, some of them hardly knowing
why they were there, or what they were going to do.

Godfrey Sheldon knew. He had come early, and meant to have Tom Grey
punished; and when the meeting was called to order he made an opening
speech, in which he went over the ground, dwelling upon Mr. Grey’s
extravagance and the money he had spent, and which he could not have
come honestly by.

“No, sir,” he said: “He has used our money unlawfully for his own
purposes, and it’s all gone—every sumarkee of it gambled away and used
for his fine house, and horses, and diamonds, and the Lord knows what.
At the very best we shan’t get more than ten cents on a dollar, and what
is that? Where have my two thousand dollars gone to? I ask you, and echo
answers, Where?”

He was getting quite eloquent, and gesticulating wildly, calling Mr.
Grey an embezzler, a gambler, a cheat and a villain, who should be made
to feel the weight of the law.

As he said this he brought his fist down upon a shaky little table with
such force that it fell with a crash to the floor. Two or three sprang
forward to pick it up, and in their excitement they did not hear the
door open or see the drooping figure which came in time to hear “feel
the weight of the law,” and see the blow which emphasized it.

When they did see her, every man rose to his feet and stared at her as
she advanced into their midst and stood with the water falling from her
cloak and hood, her face very pale and her eyes unnaturally bright. Had
a ghost appeared to them they could scarcely have been more startled,
and they began to be sorry for what Sheldon had said, and to hope she
had not heard it.

“Miss Grey,” one of them began, going toward her and offering her a
chair, “we did not expect you here. What can we do for you?”

Louie had been buffeted by the wind and drenched with the rain. The
stairs were long, and she was breathless with climbing them and with
excitement. Her heart was beating rapidly, her tongue felt thick, and
for a moment she could not speak.

Turning back her hood and undoing her cloak, which seemed to be choking
her, she threw it off with such force that the drops of water upon it
were shaken over the man who had brought her a chair and stood close to
her. He was their nearest neighbor, who had sat often at their table and
shared their hospitality, and “et tu Brute” came to Louie’s mind, as she
looked up at him.

Drawing two or three long breaths, she said:

“I heard you were to meet to-night, to see what you would do with my
father. Is that so?”

She turned to Mr. Sheldon, who answered:

“That’s about the size of it, but we didn’t expect you.”

“No,” and her lips quivered. “But, you see, I had to come; there was no
one else,” and her voice shook a little as she thought of Herbert, who
was still sitting on the dry-goods box and cursing himself for a coward.

“Did your father send you?” Mr. Sheldon asked, and Louie’s voice was
very steady as she replied:

“My father? No. He knows nothing of the meeting. He does not know me all
the time. Haven’t you heard how bad he is?”

There was no reply, and she went on:

“He is completely crushed, and so sorry. Why, he is an old man in looks.
I know he has done wrong, and I am so sorry, and mother is, too. Neither
of us had any suspicion of the truth. If we had had, do you think we
would have allowed so much expenditure? Never. I don’t know why he did
it, but it is done, and I have come to ask you not to proceed against
him; not to have him arrested, as I have heard you mean to do. It will
do no good. It will not restore your money, and it cannot add to your
happiness to know that my father, whom you have professed to like so
much, is in prison. He may die,” here her voice broke, but she steadied
herself and went on, “but, whether he lives or dies, his debts shall be
paid. It will take time—years, maybe—but I am young, only eighteen, and
I know how I can pay them. I have thought it all out, and feel sure I
can do it.”

“Have you an idee how much they be?” Godfrey Sheldon asked.

“Yes,” she replied; “but, much or little, if God spares my life, I’ll
pay them. Believe me, I will. Our house is for sale, with the horses and
carriage and diamonds. The piano is sold, and my wheel, and with part of
the money they brought I have paid some of the smaller debts. We shall
give up everything, and we shall take a small, cheap house by and by;
but I want father to stay where he is till he is better, or worse, and
perhaps you won’t mind if we keep enough to live on a while. We must
have something.”

Her voice broke again, but she had said all she came to say, and,
covering her face with her hands, the tears trickled through her fingers
and dropped into her lap. For a moment there was perfect silence, and
more than one wiped his eyes at sight of this young girl, pleading for
her father, and promising to pay a debt which would stagger many a
strong man, and which they felt sure she could never do. But that did
not matter. They were, most of them, men with kind hearts, and Louie had
done more for her father than Herbert could ever have done. It was a
little awkward, not knowing who should speak first, or what he should
say, or how his companions were feeling. The neighbor of the Greys
finally took the initiative.

He had hesitated about coming, for he knew Mr. Grey was ill, he said.
The doctor had told him so. All broke up, he understood, which proved he
was not a hardened wretch. Nothing could bring back the money, and why
not let him alone? His own thoughts would be punishment enough, and he
did not believe in kicking a fellow when he was down. Better give him a
chance to get up again.

Louie’s eyes were very bright as she smiled upon him and turned to the
others for their decision.

“Yes, let him go,” every one said, except Godfrey Sheldon, who was
silent.

His two thousand dollars weighed heavily upon him, and Louie’s refusal
to turn the horses and carriage toward his debt weighed heavier.

He wanted those bays—the finest in town—and he wanted the carriage and
his daughters wanted it, and at last he said:

“Girl, what’ll you take for them horses and kerridge, anyway? I don’t
mean a turnin’ but a square sale. You’d as lief sell ’em to me as
anybody, I s’pose. I’m good to my dum critters, I be.”

Louie looked bewildered a moment, and then replied: “I don’t know. Mr.
Blake will see to that. We shall sell them to someone”; then to the men:
“It is settled, then, that you will not trouble father. I thank you so
much, and I promise again that you shall be paid if I live.”

It was a great deal to promise, and not one of her hearers believed she
could do it, but she did, and looked very brave and hopeful as she put
on her cloak and started to leave. The neighbor, Mr. Clark, asked her to
wait and he would go with her. But she said: “No, thanks; I came alone,
and can go alone. I would rather. Father is wanting me by this time.”

She pulled her hood over her head and left the room, hearing, as she
closed the door, Mr. Sheldon’s saying:

“Don’t promise them horses to anybody till you hear from me.”

Herbert was still sitting on the dry-goods box in the dark recess when
she came out, and he knew by her face that she had been successful.

“Louie,” he said, coming forward with a suddenness which made her start.
“Louie, I am here.”

She did not cry out, but she stopped quickly and looked at him in
amazement. He had declined going there to speak for her father, and yet
here he was waiting for her, and for an instant she felt something like
gratitude that he should thus think of her. But his answer to her
question, “How did you know I was coming here?” dispelled that illusion.

“I didn’t know,” he said. “I came, hoping to find out what they meant to
do. I never dreamed of your venturing out in this storm, and was
astonished when I saw you come up the stairs.”

“Where were you?” Louie asked next, and he answered her truthfully:

“In that recess. Confound it, I am a coward and a sneak, that’s a fact,
and I didn’t care to have you or anyone see me.”

“So you kept in the dark, and let me go in alone,” Louie replied, in a
tone Herbert did not like.

He could not see her face, as they were going down the stairs, but he
could feel that something had come between them, and was very
uncomfortable.

The wind had gone down, but the rain still fell heavily, and he drew her
cloak around her and her arm closely in his, and held her umbrella over
her, and tried to talk naturally, asking what the men had said, and if
they were civil to her.

“If they hadn’t been, I’d—” he began, then stopped suddenly as he
thought of himself on the dry-goods box in the recess, wondering how he
was to know whether they were civil or not.

He made light of the idea that they ever thought seriously of molesting
her father. Godfrey Sheldon might, for he was a revengeful dog; but no
one would follow him, and if they had, his father would have spoken to
them. In fact, he had been asked to attend the meeting, and had
declined. He was drawing a good deal upon his imagination as to what his
father would do, for he knew very well what he would not do. But he
wanted to reassure Louie and talked on in the same strain, but Louie did
not answer, and with every word he said it seemed to her he was cutting
the tie which bound them. She had pledged herself to her father’s
creditors, and meant to keep the pledge, although she knew it would in
all human probability separate Herbert from her.

“And why not do it at once?” she kept asking herself, and by the time
she reached home her resolution was taken.

There was a moment of blindness, when she did not even see the light
from the hall, as she went up the steps—a long breath, which was
something like a sob, and then she said: “Come in a moment; I want to
speak to you.”




                              CHAPTER XVI
                            SEVERING THE TIE


Herbert went in, with a presentiment that something was going to happen
deleterious to himself.

Leaving him a moment, Louie went to her father’s room. Both he and her
mother were asleep; and, assured of that, she returned to Herbert and
told him very briefly what was in her mind. She did not say that
anything in his conduct had influenced her. She spoke at first only of
her own changed position, and her wish to shield him from what he would
regret.

“They call my father bad names,” she said, “and perhaps he deserves
them; but he is my father, and I shall stand by him. With you it is
different, and you must not be bound to the daughter of a speculator—a
thief—a gambler—and they say my father is all three, and they have
threatened to tar and feather him if he appeared in the street, and have
talked of arrest and State’s prison. I cannot expect you to bear that
disgrace, together with your father’s anger, when he knows, as he must
know some time. I told you you were free when the crash first came, and
you would not accept your freedom, but you must now, I am in earnest.
And then—” She hesitated, breathing hard before she continued, “I have
promised to pay his debts, and if I live I shall keep my word.”

“How?” Herbert asked.

“By my voice,” she answered. “You remember what Miss Percy said of it.
She may be right—she may be wrong. I believe she was right. At all
events I shall try. She has not forgotten me. I had a letter from her
to-day after you left me. God moved her to write, I am sure, when my
need was greatest, for she has never written before since she went
abroad last fall. She is in Paris, and still has Marchesi in mind for
me, and offered to bear the expense of my lessons if father would send
me there. I think, if we sell everything, the creditors will not care if
I keep enough for us to live on, and take me to Paris, when father and
mother get well.”

She paused and Herbert said, “You mean the stage, of course; opera,
perhaps?”

“Yes, if that brings the most money,” Louie answered. “It will take
years to pay the debts, and I may be old—thirty perhaps—before it is
done. You cannot wait all that time, and it is better to end the
relations between us now. They have always been rather peculiar, and I
have never liked the secrecy which put me in a false position. Hush!”
she continued, as she saw how white Herbert turned as he tried to speak.
“I do not say you have not loved me, but the chain has fretted you at
times, and fettered your actions, as it has mine; and it is better for
us both to be free—friends always, but free. There will then be no more
fear of your father; and if you wish to call upon me sometimes, you will
not have to come by stealth as if afraid some one would know it. Don’t
interrupt me, please,” she continued, warming up to the subject. “I have
seen it, and felt it, and it has hurt me a little; and only the belief
that you really loved me has kept me from telling you that I must be one
thing or the other—either acknowledged as your promised wife, or nothing
more to you than a friend. Father’s failure has precipitated matters,
and I give you your freedom, and your ring. I will get it.”

She left the room, while Herbert sat unable to realize what had befallen
him, or that Louie could mean what she said. He could hear her moving in
the chamber overhead, but he could not see her holding the ring to the
light, and kissing it once as she had never kissed him.

She did not cry, but was dangerously near it when she at last returned
to the room where Herbert was walking up and down, nervous and excited,
and shaking as if he were cold.

“Here it is,” she said, offering it to him. “I have never worn it except
in my room, where it seemed a mockery rather than a symbol of the tie
between us. Take it,” she persisted, as he made no sign that he heard
her.

“Louie,” he began, in a choking voice. “You must not cast me off like
this. It is very sudden, and you don’t give me time to think. I have
been a coward, I’ll admit, but try me again. There is some manhood in
me, although I admit I have not shown much since your father’s failure.
I was a cad not to join you to-night, but upon my soul I believe you did
better alone. Try me again, I will tell father everything. I will, upon
my word, and every one shall know you are to be my wife. Try me, Louie.”

Louie shook her head. With every step she had taken she had felt herself
growing lighter and happier, with a sense of freedom, and Herbert’s
persuasive words did not move her.

“You can’t wait ten or twenty years for me, and you cannot marry the
daughter of a man disgraced as my father is. In a short time you will
see it as I do. You couldn’t speak for father to-night, and you surely
could not identify yourself with him as his son-in-law if the worst
should happen, although in your excitement you think you can.”

This fling at his cowardice stung Herbert to the quick, making him
redouble his arguments why she should reconsider. It was of no use.
Louie was resolved, and when at last he left the house, the ring was in
his pocket, and there was an ache in his heart such as he had never
known before, and the world looked very dark.

When he reached home he found his father up and evidently waiting for
him.

“Where have you been?” he asked. “Not to see the Grey girl again on such
a night as this?”

“Yes, I have been to see the Grey girl,” Herbert answered, doggedly, and
in a moment his father grew angry.

“Haven’t I told you to quit it?” he asked.

There was a moment’s silence, a shutting of his teeth together, and then
Herbert began:

“I have quit it, or she has. She has thrown me over—given me my congé. I
hope you are satisfied.”

“Given you what? Thrown you over? Grey’s girl thrown you over? Given you
the mitten? What do you mean?” the judge exclaimed.

All Herbert’s fear of his father was gone—how or why, he did not know,
but it was gone, and his voice was very distinct and steady as he told
the story of his engagement from beginning to end, omitting nothing,
while his father listened with his jaw dropped and every possible
expression upon his face. Herbert expected a storm and was prepared for
it, and there was one, but not for him, although he was called a “fool”
several times, and told that he was well out of the Grey girl’s meshes;
then the storm burst on her head.

“The hussy! the upstart! Who does she think she is to throw you over?”
the judge began. “She’s like her father, who, I’ve no doubt, thinks this
minute he is better than I am. He always did think so; never paid me his
rent without making me feel that he was the landlord and I the tenant,
even when he lived in White’s Row. That’s his cut. No doubt his chin is
in the air now. The gambler! the cheat! And his daughter refused my son!
She, that Grey girl! The trollop! Does she know what she is doing when
she refused you? I wouldn’t have believed it. The minx!”

“Stop, father!” Herbert said. “I’ll not hear a word against Louie. She
was to have been my wife, and my heart aches for her now.”

“Let it ache a spell! Do you good! You’ll get over it, and be glad; for,
by the Lord Harry, as I’ve told you, if you had stuck to her, I’d ‘a’
cut you. Yes, I’d ‘a’ cut you! But she—well she’s plucky. Refused you!
My son! It beats me! Yes, it does. Going to pay the debts? I’d laugh.
Why, she’ll be a hundred before she can do it. Who is going to hear her
sing? Nobody! It’s a good riddance for you—but that girl! I wouldn’t
have thought it. No, sir! Going on the stage, is she! I like that. How
would Mrs. Herbert White, the actress, sound? Or would she take some
fancy name? Most of ’em do. Going to sing and pay the debts! Lord Harry,
it makes me laugh! I must tell your mother the kind of a daughter she
has missed!”

He might have rambled on an hour longer if Herbert had not stopped him
by saying,

“Don’t talk any more about it, now or ever. You will never be disgraced
by having an actress in the family. I would not mind. I love her so much
that I would take her no matter what she did, or what her father has
done. I have not thought so all the time. I’ve been a coward, and now
that I have lost her I’d give a great deal to get her back. I hate
myself when I think how I sat hiding in the dark and let her go in alone
among those men, and she so dainty and pretty, and—”

“Bold!” the judge interrupted him.

Herbert made a gesture of impatience and went on:

“She is not bold. She is far from it. She was pleading for her father
and her face was white as a sheet when she came out, and she
accomplished more single-handed than both you and I could have done.”

“I don’t know ‘bout that. Don’t know ‘bout that,” the judge exclaimed,
not willing to admit that any one could have more influence than
he—Judge White, if he chose to exert it.

“I know,” Herbert continued, “and there was not a man there who did not
think more highly of her and less hard towards her father for what she
said. I am ashamed that we who owe her so much have done nothing. But,
father, it is not too late and if you can do a favor to Mr. Grey, do it.
Show him some attention for my sake and Louie’s. Remember what she did
for us a year ago. It was her suggestion that saved our bank. She worked
till she fainted. You were grateful then. You were going to make her a
present and mother was to write her a note, and you have done nothing of
the sort. You have slighted her and let no occasion pass to speak ill of
her father, and I don’t like it.”

Herbert was showing a courage and manliness, for which Louie would have
respected him could she have seen him. And strange to say, his father
did not resent it, neither did he reply, but when Herbert had finished
his speech and left the room he said to himself:

“The boy is hard hit with that little filly, but he’ll get over it, and
by George, he is more than half right. I hain’t done the square thing,
and it’s funny how different I feel towards Grey from what I did now I
know there’s no danger in that quarter. I’m sorry I didn’t make her a
present last Christmas, as I said I would; but Herbert blew so about
that bellus thing I thought to get her, that I forgot it. I did, upon my
soul, and I s’pose Susan forgot to write, but I’ll do something. I don’t
know what. I’ll speak to Susan.”

He found her in their sleeping room preparing for bed and putting her
front hair in crimping pins.

“Susan,” he began, “I’ve got the greatest yarn to tell you. What do you
think that Grey girl has been and done? In the first place she was
engaged to Herbert—”

Mrs. White stopped crimping her hair and dropped into a chair.

“Is engaged to Herbert!” she exclaimed, and the judge replied, “Was
engaged, but isn’t now. She has thrown him over! Think of it! Refused
Herbert! My son! And is going to sing on the stage to pay her father’s
debts. There’s grit for you! And the boy is all broke up, and says he
aches all over.”

“What do you mean?” Mrs. White asked, resuming her crimping, while her
husband repeated in substance what Herbert had told him of his
engagement and of Louie’s visit to the Session and its result.

“I could have stopped it, of course, but I didn’t,” he said, “but I must
say the girl is plucky, and she did do me a good turn and no mistake,
and, Susan, I don’t b’lieve you ever wrote that note.”

“What note?” his wife asked, and the judge replied, “Lord Harry, is your
memory so short? You was going to send her a nicely worded note of
thanks, and I was to give her a present at Christmas, and we didn’t do
neither, but ’tain’t too late. Their house is to be sold, they must live
somewhere, and I b’lieve I’ll let ’em have that house in White’s Row,
where they used to live, free, if they want it. Yes, sir, that’ll be
better than the bellus thing, and will be heaping coals. Yes, sir!”

Just why he was to heap coals, unless it were that Louie had refused his
son, was not clear to him; but having decided on the house in White’s
Row, he went to bed in a much calmer frame of mind than Herbert, who sat
through nearly the entire night, reviewing the past as connected with
Louie, and feeling that life could never be again to him just what it
had been when she was his guiding star. There was much for which he
blamed himself—much for which he was sorry, and yet—he could not help
the little word yet, which came stealing into his mind with a suggestion
that the present condition of things was better than the old. His father
knew all, and had not annihilated him. Then, Mr. Grey might die. He did
not quite believe he hoped he would; but, if he should, and the disgrace
be forgotten, and Louie get over the Quixotic idea of the stage, and
paying the debts, which would take so many years, she might come back to
him, and he be able to take her, without fear of his father or the
world.

There was comfort in this, and his heart was not quite as sore, or the
world as dark, when, just as it was growing light, he fell into a
troubled sleep.




                              CHAPTER XVII
                          THE SHADOW OF DEATH


Mr. Grey had been so impressed with a conviction that his creditors
would proceed against him and was so nervous on the subject that Louie
decided to tell him that nothing was to be done. This was the morning
after the meeting, when his mind seemed clearer and he said to her,
“What are they doing about _me_? I mean, will they proceed against me?
They can, you know.”

“No,” Louie replied. “Some of them are a good deal excited, of course;
but they will do nothing. I have that from the best authority, so, don’t
worry any more.”

“They are kind,” he answered, “to leave me in peace. I am punished
enough with my conscience, which goads me like so many demons.”

He was silent a moment and then his eyes grew brighter again, with an
expression Louie did not like, and his old comical smile played round
his mouth as he said,

“It would be a big thing to send a dying man to prison, wouldn’t it? and
do a lot of good. I deserve it, though, but am glad not to go. And now,
cover me up. I am very cold all the time—some like Harry Gill, you know,
shivering with his three coats and I don’t know how many blankets.”

He laughed again—a laugh pitiful to see; and Louie covered him up and
wiped the cold sweat from his face, and sat down beside him with a
sinking heart as she saw how fast he was failing, both bodily and
mentally. The strain he had endured for years, with the recent
excitement, was telling fearfully upon a constitution never very strong.
As the days went by he asked no questions about the business, and
answered none very coherently, but lay all day with his eyes closed as
if asleep. Louie knew he was not sleeping, for if she left the room he
always looked after her, and smiled when she came back. Once, when he
heard the sound of wheels in the lane, he said to her:

“That is our horses, Jack and Jill; where are they going?”

Louie’s eyes were full of tears which she could not keep back, as she
told him that Jack and Jill had been sold with the carriage, and were
being driven away.

“Sold to whom?” he asked.

“Godfrey Sheldon,” she replied. “He offered so big a price that Mr.
Blake advised us to take it. Do you care?”

“No,” he said. “Nothing matters now for me, but I would like to see my
bays once more. Do you think you could help me to the window?”

“I’ll try,” Louie replied, and stepping from his bed he tottered to the
window just as the carriage reached the highway.

Jack and Jill had not been exercised for some time and their heads were
high in the air and it was with difficulty the driver could keep them
from breaking into a run in their delight to be out again.

“Beautiful bays! I hope Mr. Sheldon will be kind to them. They have
never had a blow from me. They wouldn’t know what it meant,” Mr. Grey
said, and Louie replied, “He will be kind; he told me so, and promised
faithfully not to cut off their tails, as is the cruel fashion of the
day, or curb them with one of those straight checks which fret them so.
I never see a horse with his head reined so high that he can almost see
his own back that I do not wish his master was obliged to have his head
pulled back, while he was driven up hill and down, in heat and cold,
dragging heavy loads after him and trying in vain to ease his aching
neck.”

“Yes, yes, Mr. Grey answered feebly. “It is wicked; it is cruel; and I
am glad Jack and Jill will not be subjected to it. Good-bye, my pets,
good-bye. I shall never see you again.”

He waved his hands towards his horses just disappearing from sight and
then went back to bed, where he lay for a while very quiet. Then he
roused up and said:

“I don’t know anything about the business. Everything is misty and
unreal, except that terrible day when the mob came, and I wanted to kill
myself. That, with what led to it, is always before me. Just now my
brain is clearer and I want to know what has been done.”

Very briefly Louie told him what had been sold and what debts were paid.

“And the house?” he asked. “Is that sold?”

“No,” Louie said. “It is in the market but no one has bought it. The
price is so high, but Mr. Blake advises us not to sell for less. He has
a purchaser in mind.”

“Yes,” Mr. Grey replied. “The price may seem high, but I have spent more
than that upon it and I’d like to stay here as long as I live. It is a
beautiful place, but if a purchaser is found, don’t hesitate on my
account. We can find some cheap place. May be we can move into the
little house in which we once lived in White’s Row. Nancy told me it was
vacant. That would be a joke and a kind of retributive justice, too. I
guess the judge would be glad to rent it to us again. He’d say the end
of our see-saw was down pretty low.”

He laughed aloud and then relapsed into silence, with his eyes closed
and his whole body as motionless as if he were dead.

Mrs. Grey had been persuaded to take another room, and was nearly as
helpless as her husband with nervous prostration, from which she did not
rally, and thus every care was left to Louie, whose burden grew heavier
as the summer waned and the autumn came on.

On the day after her interview with Herbert she had answered Miss
Percy’s letter, telling her of the trouble which had come upon them and
of her resolve to pay the debts, if possible, and adding that when her
father and mother were able to be left she should come to Paris if they
could afford the expense of the journey.

“Whatever you expend for me I shall pay again, for something tells me I
shall succeed,” she wrote, taking upon herself another debt in addition
to the one already assumed. But she felt brave and hopeful, knowing
nothing of the difficulties which attend the career she had marked out
for herself.

Miss Percy seemed to her a tower of strength, and she waited anxiously
for a reply to her letter. It came at last, full of sympathy and hope
and promises to do whatever could be done should the chance come to do
it. Evidently Miss Percy had heard more of the failure than Louie had
told her, and her great, kind heart went out warmly towards the young
girl buffeting the tide of misfortune alone.

No mention was made of the Lansings, and Louie did not know they were
abroad. Occasionally a thought of Fred crossed her mind with a feeling
that in some way he would have stood by her as Herbert had not done. But
she resolutely put such thoughts aside as a wrong to Herbert. She was no
longer bound to him, and she was glad; but sometimes in the night, when
she was too tired and anxious to sleep, there would come over her a
feeling of desolation which made her heart ache for the love she had put
from her, and which at times had made her very happy. Then she would
rally and say, “It is better so; a great deal better,” and be herself
again.

She did not see Herbert after her talk with him until just before he
went back to college in the autumn. He had been to the Adirondacks, with
some of his classmates and their sisters,—girls with big hats and tailor
gowns, who were up-to-date in every way, and while rambling and climbing
and hunting among the mountains and lakes he began to find that life
might be tolerably endurable without Louie. There had been full accounts
of the failure in the papers, and he had heard it discussed many times,
and Mr. Grey spoken of as a man who deserved the weight of the law, if
he did not get it. His companions knew nothing of his former relations
with Louie, nor did he enlighten them, and he was conscious of a feeling
of relief that the Greys were nothing to him.

“If Louie were all alone it would be different,” he thought, “and I
would not give her up, but I cannot take the family.”

He went to see her on his return from the Adirondacks, and just before
he left for Yale. He had a little time to wait, and as he glanced around
the elegantly furnished room he wondered how long the family could stay
there, and where they would go when obliged to leave. His father had
wondered so, too; and as the house in White’s Row was still vacant, and
his generous fit still on him, he had said to Herbert, in speaking of
the Greys:

“Yes, sir. They’ve done the fair thing, or the girl has, for she is boss
and all hands. Her mother don’t amount to shucks! They’ve sold their
diamonds and paid debts, and sold their horses and carriage, and, Lord
Harry, who do you s’pose has bought ’em, the horses and carriage, I
mean: Godfrey Sheldon! Yes, sir! Godfrey Sheldon! Rides round town with
his girls, big as life; and, if you’ll b’lieve it, has got the Grey
coachman, too, and his clothes! Think of it! I stripped Dave quicker
than wink! It was bad enough to have Tom Grey in livery, but Godfrey
Sheldon! Lord Harry! What a farce! I wonder he didn’t buy the diamonds
and have his wife and girls flaunt ’em morning, noon and night as they
would! They don’t know any better! Why, your mother won’t wear hers
except it’s something swell like our party! I hear their house is sold,
or going to be, and they’ll have to leave, and I’ll tell you what I’ve
thought of doing as a kind of recompense for what the Grey girl did for
us. I hain’t forgot it. No, sir! I didn’t send that bellus thing, you
made such a row, and now how would it do to offer them, rent free, the
house in White’s Row where they used to live? It is empty and has been
for quite a spell. I’d paper some of the rooms. You always have to with
new tenants!”

“I think it would be an insult!” Herbert answered hotly, expressing
himself so fully on the subject that his father gave up his magnanimous
intentions with regard to the tenement in White’s Row.

Herbert was thinking of this and what a change it would be for the
family when Louie came in, looking so hollow-eyed and worn that he could
scarcely suppress a cry of dismay as he arose to meet her.

“Louie! Louie! Poor little Louie!” he said, and his chin quivered, while
Louie broke down entirely and cried for a moment as Herbert had never
seen any one cry before.

Then she brushed her tears away, and, smiling up at him, said, “I did
not mean to give way like this, but the sight of you brought the old
happy times back, before I knew what sorrow was; and father is bad this
morning, and mother, too, and everything is so changed; but I am glad to
see you. I knew you would come.”

She tried to seem natural and asked him of his trip, and how soon he was
going back to college, and told how kind everybody was to her, from
Nancy Sharp, who, now that all their old servants had gone and they had
only a young girl, was their mainstay in the kitchen. The house was sold
at last she said, to a stranger, whose name she didn’t know.

“It is very curious. Don’t know his name! How can that he?” Herbert
asked, and Louie replied: “No one would buy it, the price was so high,
till Mr. Blake bought it and paid the money down, and then in a few days
told us he had sold it to some one who does not care to occupy it at
present, and said we could stay here rent free as long as we like. Mr.
Blake will not tell me who it is—says he is not at liberty to do so. Who
do you suppose it can be? I wish I knew.”

Something in Herbert’s face made Louie start suddenly and exclaim, “It
isn’t you?”

“No,” Herbert said bitterly. “It isn’t I. I wish to Heaven it were or
that I had the means to help you. Oh, Louie, Louie! is it all over
between us?”

A strong suspicion of the unknown friend had entered Herbert’s mind, and
with it a fierce pang of jealousy which prompted him to cry out for what
he had lost, and which had never seemed dearer to him than now when she
stood before him, like some fair flower beaten by the storm, but sweet
and lovely still.

Louie was surprised and drew away from him quickly. She had no wish to
renew their old relations and knew it could not be.

“It is all over; it must be,” she said. “We settled that, you know; but
we are friends; the best of friends, always; and I am glad you came to
see me. There is no one in the world except father and mother whom I
like half as well as I do you; and now good-by. I hear Nancy Sharp’s
voice in the kitchen, and that means a battle with the maid, if there is
anything out of order, as there probably is. Nancy is sharp by nature as
well as by name! and makes no allowance for what she calls ‘sozzlin
ways,’ and Betty is rather that way. I must go to them. Good-by.”

She gave him her hand, which he pressed hard between both his own, but
could not speak, for the lump in his throat choking him. So, without a
word, he went away, feeling that everything was surely over between
himself and Louie, and feeling envious and jealous of the stranger who
had bought the Grey house and whose identity he guessed.

What business had he to meddle, and what would Louie say if she knew, as
she must some time know, but not from him? he thought. He would be
generous enough to both to keep his suspicions to himself, and not even
hint them to his father, to whom he merely said that the house was sold
to some stranger, who, for the present, would allow the family to stay
there rent free.

Such generosity the judge could not understand. He had suggested the
tenement in White’s Row, and thought himself very magnanimous to do it,
and had even spoken of his intention to some of his acquaintances, who
elevated their eyebrows and said he was very kind, while inwardly they
laughed at the idea. The judge, however, was not one to understand
insinuations derogatory to himself, and felt that he was exceedingly
generous.

“Same as givin’ ’em a hundred dollars, square!” he said, and he was
thinking of writing his offer to Louie, when Herbert dampened his zeal,
first by telling him it was an insult, and next that the Grey house was
given to the family rent free, and there would be no necessity for them
to move either into White’s Row or elsewhere.

Such kindness from a stranger passed him, he said, and the man must be
either crazy or a millionaire. The fact, however, helped the Greys in
his estimation. Somebody with money must think a great deal of them, and
the day after Herbert left for New Haven he suggested to his wife that
they should call at the Greys.

“Most everybody is calling,” he said, “and I don’t want to be the only
dog in the manger.”

Mrs. White, who had a headache, declined, and the judge went alone,
gotten up with a good deal of care, in his second best clothes, with a
flower in his button hole, and gloves, which he seldom wore, on his
hands. He wished to impress Louie with a sense of what she had lost when
she declined an alliance with his family. She received him courteously,
but did not seem at all abashed, and answered his questions civilly.

Neither her father, nor her mother could see him, she said, but she
would tell them he had called, and she thanked him for coming.

“Oh, that’s a mere nothing,” he replied, with a pompous wave of his
hand. “We are taught in the good book to have charity, you know, and I
mean to have it. Yes, I do, and I was goin’ to offer you my tenement for
nothing—the one you used to live in, when I heard you was to stay here.
You’ve no idea who the man is that gives you the rent? It’s amazing!”

Louie had been growing stiffer and more dignified as he talked, for she
understood perfectly that he was trying to patronize her and did not
wish for his patronage. His mention of the White Row tenement brought a
scarlet flush to her cheek and an angry gleam to her eyes. She could go
back to Bay Cottage willingly, if they went of their own free will and
seeking, but as dependents on Herbert’s father, never! And she did not
even thank him for what he had proposed to do.

It would not be necessary for them move at present, thanks to some kind
friend whom they did not know, but whom they should pay in time, she
said, with her head held high and something in her manner which made the
judge feel small beside her.

She would not shame the White pedigree, he thought, admiring her in
spite of his pride.

“Oh, yes, certainly. We all hope your father will be on his feet again
before long. Remember me to him and your mother; if there’s anything we
can do, call on us. I hain’t forgot the run. No, I hain’t! and I feel
friendly, I do, and don’t care a cent about losing the back rent on the
bank. No, I don’t! I can afford that. Yes, I can! Good day!” he said,
with another wave of his hand, which he might have offered to Louie, if
she had not stood with her hands clasped behind her.

“Good-morning, sir!” she said, standing quite still, as he went out,
thinking to himself, “Gritty and plucky and proud, and, by the Lord
Harry, handsome as blazes. Herbert might do worse—if she wa’n’t Grey’s
daughter. Well, I’ve done my duty, and needn’t pray to be delivered from
uncharitableness.”

The judge was in quite a peaceful frame of mind, as he drove away behind
his blacks, while Louie looked after him with a feeling of contempt and
a wonder that Herbert could be so nice with such a conceited father. It
was the first time she had given a thought to the back rent on the bank,
of which he had reminded her, and for which he did not “care a cent!”

“But it shall be paid at once. We will not be indebted to Judge White,”
she said, as she went to her father, telling him of the judge’s call and
imitating his manner so perfectly that her father laughed aloud and told
her she would make a good actress if she chose to employ her talent in
that direction.

“The judge meant to be kind,” he said, “and I am much obliged to him for
his intended offer of Bay Cottage. I might have been glad to accept it
but for this unknown friend who so generously allows us to stay here.
I’ve no idea who it is?”

“No,” Louie answered. “I’ve no idea, for Mr. Blake does not give me the
slightest hint, but it is very kind in him, whoever he is. Everybody is
kind. I did not know we had so many friends.”

“It is for you and your mother, not for me, I do not deserve any
consideration,” Mr. Grey replied, the old sad, hopeless look settling on
his face which had brightened a little when Louie described the judge’s
visit; but whether he deserved kindness or not he had it from almost
every source and the failure seemed forgotten as the days went by, and
the shadows grew darker and darker in the room where Louie kept her
tireless watch. Even Godfrey Sheldon came over with Jack and Jill,
offering to take the sick man for an airing, if he were able to go.

Louie thanked him and said, “Father will never go out again till he is
carried out. The doctor says so, and I know it without his saying. He is
weaker than usual this morning, but I will tell him of your kindness.”

Her father was sleeping when she returned to him, and continued drowsy
until late in the afternoon, when he roused up, seemingly in possession
of all his faculties, which for a few days had been rather misty. How
his eyes were bright and his voice natural, as he asked first how his
wife was and then what time it was.

“You are better,” Louie said, smoothing his hair, which was growing
white so fast.

“No, daughter,” he answered, “not really better; it is the reaction
which sometimes comes before the last change, and is given me so that I
may tell you what I must tell to somebody. Confession is good for the
troubled conscience, they say, and I must try it, and see if there is
help for this conscience of mine, which constantly conjures up all the
specters of the past—and there are so many of them.”

He was silent a moment, and then said, “Sit down by me while I tell you,
and hold my hand, and when you drop it I shall know that you think of me
as I deserve.”

She sat down by him, and, taking his hand, said to him, “I am listening
and I shall not drop your hand.”




                             CHAPTER XVIII
                            MR. GREY’S STORY


“Louie,” he began, “do you remember asking me once if I were a gambler?”

“Yes, father.”

“And I told you I was not?”

“Yes, father.”

“It was true at that time, for I had quit it, and was trying to be
respectable; but I had been one in the worst sense of the word.”

Louie tightened her grasp on his hands as he continued:

“It began away back—was born in me, I think, for my father had it—a love
for gambling, I mean, and a desire to live luxuriously. The first time I
tried it was at Monte Carlo, where I went with my father when only
eighteen. They will not let a young man into the play rooms unless he is
twenty-one, but I was tall and looked old for my years, and an
unscrupulous friend got me in somehow, and I nearly lost my head in the
good luck which came to me. Why, within a week I gained a thousand
dollars and I left the place with the love of gaming boiling in my veins
so hotly that it has never cooled. I feel it yet, and do believe I
should try it again if I had the chance. It is a disease, and you have
no idea how it works like madness in the brain when once it has a
foothold there. I was always thinking about it and planning how to make
something for nothing, and my father encouraged me and laughingly called
me his mascot. I was always betting and generally won. Then I began to
try my luck with cards and was known as the most successful player in
the set with which I was associated. For me to play was to win as a
rule. I had no particular method. I simply won, and felt so sure of it
that I think the assurance helped me to keep my nerves steady and my
head cool, or else it was his Satanic Majesty who, some said, stood by
my side and helped me. This went on until after I was married and you
were born, and your mother never suspected it so well did I cover my
tracks and so great was her faith in me. But it is a long road which
never turns, and in Denver I began to lose as much as I gained. You
remember we were sometimes poor and again had plenty of money and you
thought it was the hard times which affected my business.”

“Yes, and, oh, father,” Louie gasped, remembering the story Nancy Sharp
had told her; “Is it true that you had a room there where young men and
old, too, met at night and played for money! The Smith family who have
moved here from Denver have told it and I have said it was a lie. Tell
me it is!”

“I wish to Heaven I could!” her father replied, great drops of sweat
beginning to gather upon his face. “It is true. I had a room fitted up
with everything to make it attractive, for cards and games of all kinds.
It was first-class in every way as to order and appearance, and books
and magazines for those who cared to read were there, and men and boys
frequented it night after night, sometimes losing, sometimes gaining,
while I looked on unconcernedly at the harm I was doing, but excitedly,
like the war horse rushing into battle. I had fits of conscience, which
shook me like an ague, and I would close the room and swear to myself
never to open it again. But the disease was greater than I could
conquer. It mastered me and I went back to my old ways. I was a gambler
of the worst type, while passing for a high-souled, honorable gentleman;
popular with everybody, I believe. But if that were all, my dying pillow
would not be as full of thorns as it is now, nor would the faces of
those I have lead to ruin confront me as they do. There is a blacker sin
on my soul than gambling. I am a murderer!”

“Oh, father!” Louie cried, starting back from him in horror, and trying
to withdraw her hand.

“Don’t let go, Louie,” he said, holding fast to her. “I shall sink to
perdition, if you do. I never killed a man the way you think. I was the
means of his death, and this is how it was:

“When we came to Merivale I had firmly resolved to reform and earn my
living honestly. But life was monotonous, and I longed for the flesh
pots I had left behind. I would try once more, I thought and then
renounce gambling forever. I felt sure of winning and I wanted to raise
you and your mother to a better position than we occupied in White’s
Row.

“You remember I went to Butte after we had lived there awhile. I used to
go there sometimes from Denver when my funds were low. It was my field,
where I reaped a golden harvest from the miners, for I was an expert at
the kind of play for money common among them. I was not known there by
my right name. I was Tom Crary, the professional gambler, and I played
for high stakes, and to win. On my last visit I met a young man from
Washington with piles of money, and no end of conceit as to his methods
of play. He had been successful a few times, and, inflated with pride,
challenged me to a trial of skill, telling me I must keep my eyes open
if I played with him. He was from the East where the people were up to
the times. He said a good deal more in the same strain and evidently
looked upon us all as a species of heathendom. It was easy to take his
measure, while something about him attracted me. He was different from
most of the men with whom I had dealt, and I felt a strange
unwillingness to play with him. But he insisted, and at the first
sitting I let him win a few hundreds, and said I was too tired to go on.
I knew he would come for me again, and he did the next night, more
conceited than ever and ready to stake any amount I pleased to name.

“Something prompted me to try to dissuade him from playing. I might as
well have talked to the wind. I was afraid, he said, with a sneer which
decided me, and we sat down, with a number of men around us whose faces
I see so often in my dreams, just as I see his, flushed and eager at
first, then anxious and pale, but still determined as the game went on,
and I won almost continually. I meant business this time, and gave him
no quarter until he was nearly cleaned out for that night, and I was the
richer by thousands.

“He was not, however, discouraged. His luck would turn, he said, and if
it didn’t he could stand it, and the next night he came for me again,
with the same result. Still, he did not lose his courage, and the third
night found us again sitting face to face with something in his
expression which reminded me of a young Englishman I once saw at Monte
Carlo, playing desperately, while the sweat stood in great drops on his
forehead and around his mouth. The next morning he was found dead behind
a clump of shrubbery in the grounds of the Casino, and was buried in a
suicide’s grave. My opponent was like him, young, handsome and
determined, and his face grew whiter and the sweat drops larger as the
night went on, and my pile increased while his lessened, until he
declared himself ruined and arose from the table.

“I pitied him, he was so young and fair, so like a boy, and I offered to
return half I had won from him. He repulsed me with angry hauteur, and
left the room, saying he was not a sneak, or whining coward; but there
was a look in his eyes I did not like, and it haunted me all night,
making me resolve to find him the next morning and insist upon his
taking back more than half I had gained. But when morning came and I
inquired for him, he was dead, with a bullet in his brain. His body was
sent to his friends, and I made a vow never to gamble that way again,
and I never have, nor have I been able to forget that boyish face whose
dead eyes, half-open, seemed to look at me so reproachfully.

“His money was a curse to me, but I tried to make you and poor mother
happy with it. I built this house, and opened a bank and passed for a
highly respectable man. But the demon of gain by gambling was with me
still. I told you once of my career in the bank which ended in ruin. I
cannot rehearse it again. I am getting tired and nearing the end.
Something has been sapping my life for a long time, and when the crisis
came, and took my good name away, I went down with it and shall never
rise again, nor do I wish to. I could not face a people with whom I have
stood so high. I am dying; and, when I am gone, what will you and your
mother do? Is there anything between you and Herbert White?”

“No, nothing,” Louie answered, in a whisper.

She could not at once speak aloud, for she was seeing the face of the
dead boy, whose half-open eyes had looked reproach at her father as hers
had looked at times while listening to his story. She had once said that
if she knew their money came by gambling she would smash the furniture
and burn the house. She did know it now, but she must keep silent and
never let even her mother know what she knew of her father’s past.

He had not told her the name of the young man, and she did not ask him.
She didn’t care, her heart was so full of pain and humiliation at what
she had heard. It was worse than she supposed, and she was glad that
everything was over between herself and Herbert. It must have been ended
now. She could never marry any one, knowing what she did. Her life work
must be to make some amends by paying the creditors in Merivale.

When her father asked again, “What will you do when I am gone?” she
cried, “Oh, father, you must not die, and leave mother and me alone! I
have promised to pay all you owe, and I can do it.”

“How?” he asked, and she replied by telling him what had passed between
herself and Miss Percy.

“Percy,” he repeated, sitting up in bed with a strength he had not shown
in days. “You mean the lady who was at the Whites’ a year ago, and
wanted to take you abroad?”

“Yes, father,” she answered; and, with a laugh which made Louie’s blood
curdle, it was so unnatural, Mr. Grey fell back upon his pillow,
whispering words she could not understand.

The next moment he was shivering with a frightful chill, from which he
never fully rallied.




                              CHAPTER XIX
                           THE END AND AFTER


Nowhere is an error forgotten so readily, or more kindness shown to the
erring one when in trouble, than in a small place, and Merivale was not
an exception. The payment of the smaller debts had done much towards
restoring good feeling among a certain class of creditors. The dresses
intended for Narragansett Pier had been returned to Boston. The milkman
had his range and winter coal and Johnny’s overcoat. Other Johnnies
would be clothed and warmed through the coming winter. The back rent on
the bank was paid, the judge smacking his lips as he received the money
and saying, “them women folks are trying to do the square thing.” The
woman with the thirty dollars was rejoicing in her new teeth, while
Nancy Sharp had been paid in full, part of the payment consisting of the
identical twenty silver dollars which had gone round so many times on
the day of the run, and nothing could exceed her fidelity to the Greys
or the bitterness of her tongue if aught was said against them. Others
of higher degree than Nancy followed her example, and words of sympathy
and offers of help, if needed, were daily left at the house where the
master lay dying.

Mrs. Grey had recovered sufficiently to be in the sick-room a part of
the time, but it was Louie who bore the burden and whispered comfort to
the repentant man, who, in his anguish, often cried out:

“God have mercy upon me, a miserable sinner.”

“He will; He will. He knows how sorry you are. Don’t be afraid. He has
said that whoever comes to Him He will not cast out, and though your
sins are as scarlet He will make them white as snow,” Louie would say to
him at intervals, and cheered by her words, hope came at last, and
though he did not talk much, there was a look of peace upon his face
which deepened as the great change came, and when Louie bent over him
and asked, “Father, do you know me? And is it well with you?” he
answered, “Yes, all is well,” while his old-time smile settled around
his mouth and made his face more natural in death than it had been
during his illness.

The first intimation the judge had of his death was in church, where
prayers were said for a family in affliction. He felt sure it was for
Mrs. Grey and Louie, and his amen was so loud as to make his wife start
and glance sideways at him. The next morning he said to her:

“We’d better drive to the Greys and leave cards of condolence. Which
corner do we turn down? Hanged if I know.”

Mrs. White didn’t know, either, but ventured a guess that it used to be
the lower left-hand; so the cards bearing the names of Judge White and
Mrs. White, with the lower left-hand corner turned down, were left at
the Greys, where other cards were received as the day wore on, and words
of sympathy were spoken and offers of help made and accepted.

Mrs. Grey had collapsed again, and everything was left to Louie, who,
with white face and dry eyes saw everybody, even to Godfrey Sheldon, who
came to her and said:

“You’ll want a carriage for the grave, and I thought mebby you’d like
your old one with Jack and Jill and the driver. I’ll put a knot of crape
on his arm.”

Louie thanked him and accepted his offer, and then hurried from him to
read a note from Herbert, who wrote:


“Dear Louie: I have just heard of your father’s death, and am awfully
sorry for you. I wish I could be there; but as I cannot, I shall send
some flowers, which are for you as much as for your father.

                                                              “HERBERT.”


He sent the flowers—a pillow of pansies—with “Father,” in the center,
and the first tears Louie had shed fell upon the floral offering, which
was followed by many more, until on the day of the funeral the house was
like a garden and filled with the perfume of roses and lilies and pinks.
So many flowers seemed out of place for a man who had wrought so much
mischief as Mr. Grey, but the memory of his misdeeds was forgotten for
the time in sympathy for his wife and daughter. Nancy Sharp was not
behind with her gift, and one of the silver dollars which Mr. Blake had
paid her, and which she had kept tied up in a stocking, was spent for a
bouquet which she laid upon the coffin, with a rather soiled card,
bearing the words, “Nancy Sharp, Her flours. Rest your sole.”

It was a very large funeral, for nearly every creditor was present, with
many who had never done business with the dead man. Judge White came
early, and when he saw Jack and Jill, he said to the undertaker: “Take
my carriage. Yes, sir—take mine for the mourners.”

There were only two real ones, Louie and her mother, but many went to
the grave; Nancy Sharp, with a black ribbon on her bonnet and a black
shawl on her shoulders, riding in state in Judge White’s carriage, with
three more of her companions. As the preferred creditor, she felt
herself entitled to a prominent place, and when the White carriage came
up she was the first to get in, saying to her friends who stood near
her:

“Come in, girls. It’s your only chance to ride on satin cushions.”

As the judge had given up his carriage he decided to walk into town and
wait for it. Standing aside to let the procession pass he caught sight
of Nancy her face radiant with triumph, although she tried to look
solemn, as befitted the occasion. For a moment the judge stood
speechless. Then he began with his favorite expression, “By the Lord
Harry,” but remembering that was hardly the time for an explosion, he
bottled his wrath till he reached home, which he did on foot, without
waiting in town.

“What do you think?” he said to his wife, “I gave up the carriage,
thinking the widder might go in it, and was padding along in the dirt
and dust—and such a dust and heat for October—when who should come
riding by in my carriage—on my cushions—but old Nancy Sharp and three
more fishwomen like her. I tell you I won’t stand it. Who knows what
catching thing they had in their clothes? I’ll have it fumigated with a
sulphur candle, by the Lord Harry, I will! Nancy Sharp riding in my
carriage! mine! to Tom Grey’s funeral! and such a funeral! Why, you’d
s’pose ’twas the Governor they was burying. Yes, sir! the Governor!
Everybody was there but you. House full—yard full—ten carriages full,
besides the hearse and clergyman and bearers—and honorary bearers—and
more’n a hundred dollars worth of flowers, I’ll bet. Why, _they_
couldn’t do any more for _me_, than they’ve done for Tom Grey; and Nancy
Sharp in my carriage! _Mine!_ and bobbing at me as she passed! I won’t
stand it! No, sir!”

Just what he did to his carriage is not known. Probably nothing, as his
mind was diverted into another channel by a letter David brought him
when he came from the burial, after having deposited each of the
fishwomen at her door in White’s Row. The letter was from Herbert,
asking his father to interest himself a little in Mrs. Grey and Louie,
now that they were left alone.

“I don’t know what they have to live on as I hear they are paying debts
with the money received for the house, and I don’t suppose they would
take anything from me,” he wrote; “but you and mother can help them, and
you owe them something for what Louie did for us.”

“Great guns! Why is he everlastingly harping on that?” the judge
exclaimed. “And he is fool enough to s’pose that a girl who threw him
over would accept help from me? No, sir! Proud as Lucifer, but it won’t
do to let ’em starve. I’ll sound Blake, and find how the land lays, and
maybe I’ll start a subscription. I’ll head it with ten dollars.”

The judge felt himself a very generous man after this decision, but his
ten dollars were never needed. Other forces were at work for Mrs. Grey
and Louie, and within three weeks after Mr. Grey’s death there came a
letter from Miss Percy, urging Louie to come abroad at once with her
mother, who would be greatly benefited by the sea voyage.

“I have pleasant apartments,” she wrote, “where you will be welcome as
my guests; and, when you are rested, we will see about that voice. Don’t
hesitate for any scruples whatever, but come. I want you, and when I
want a thing, I want it, and generally get it. Come.”

It took Louie some little time to make up her mind with regard to going
abroad. For herself there was no hesitancy. It was her mother’s health
which troubled her. Could she endure the voyage and the change; she
seemed so feeble and lifeless? She could endure both, Mrs. Grey said,
evincing an eagerness to go which surprised Louie. They could not stay
where they were, Mrs. Grey argued. It would be wrong to trespass upon
the kindness of a stranger much longer. They must make a change soon.
They had money enough to pay their passage, which would be second-class.
She had heard that many respectable people went that way on the big
steamers and were very comfortable. They could live inexpensively in
Paris until Louie was able to earn something, either by her voice or
teaching English.

This was Mrs. Grey’s reasoning, while, although Louie’s better judgment
told her how unfit her mother was for the undertaking, her whole soul
went out for the chance offered her to begin her life work—the paying of
her father’s debts.

A second letter from Miss Percy, more urgent than the first, finally
decided her, and a bleak, dreary November day found her and her mother
on board the “Teutonic,” as second-class passengers. Everything which
kind wishes at home could do for her had been done, and she had
thankfully accepted the gifts brought to them—the warm sea hoods made by
loving hands, the afghan and cushions for the deck, the basket of
delicacies which the table would not furnish, and the bed-shoes Nancy
Sharp had knit, and presented with hot tears suffusing her hard face.
Mrs. White sent them a cure specific for sea-sickness, which Louie
packed in a box with half a dozen more specifics, each warranted to
cure.

Jack and Jill carried them to the station, where a large number of
people were assembled to bid them good-by. Nancy Sharp’s voice was the
loudest of all, and her hands waving her red shawl, the last image which
stamped itself on Louie’s tear-blurred vision as the train shot through
the deep cut in the hill and hid the station from view.

When she decided to leave Merivale she had begged Mr. Blake to tell her
the name of the stranger who had so kindly given them the use of the
house. But the old lawyer shook his head. The man didn’t want his right
hand to know what his left had done. He had money enough, and the little
rent they would have paid was only a drop in the bucket, he said,
adding, “I can’t say that he isn’t something of a crank; but I promised
to keep dark, and I have. You can write to him if you like. I haven’t
sworn not to send him a letter, and I think maybe it would please him.”

“I wonder I never thought of that,” Louie said, and that night she
wrote:


“My Dear Unknown Friend: We are going away from Merivale—from our home,
where you have been so kind as to let us stay. I don’t know who you are,
but I want to tell you how much I thank you for myself and mother and
dear father, who died in his old home through your great kindness to us,
entire strangers. Every day I ask God to bless you, and I am sure He
will. Written words seem so inadequate to express all I feel, but some
time I hope I may meet you face to face, and perhaps repay you for all
you have done for us. God bless you, whoever you are; and if there is
any good thing you desire more than another, may He give it to you. Very
truly and gratefully yours,

                                                           “LOUIE GREY.”


This letter Mr. Blake directed, laughing to himself as he dropped it
into the mail box, and thought, “I shouldn’t wonder if it went with her
across the sea, and maybe she’ll hear from it personally.”

This was the day before Louie left Merivale, and now she was on the
great ship and feeling inexpressibly lonely as she watched the people
around her receiving the good-bys from friends, while she had no one to
speak to—no one in all that crowd who knew or cared who she was—a
second-class passenger, jostled from side to side and once nearly run
down as she turned to go back to her mother, whom she had seen in her
berth before she came across to the first-class deck.

“I am better there,” she thought, just as some one said to her, “Louie!
Louie!”

It was Herbert, and he soon had her hands in his and was saying to her:

“I’ve found you at last, when I had nearly given you up. I couldn’t let
you go without seeing you; and as it is Saturday, I ran over from New
Haven to say good-by. There are some friends of mine on the ship—Mr. Le
Barron and his sisters. I want to present you to them, and to the
doctor. I have met him at a club dinner. He is a good fellow, and may be
more attentive to you if he knows you are my friend; and you are sure to
need him, or your mother is. Where is she? I have been all over the ship
and peered into nearly every state-room, hoping to find her or you.”

He had talked rapidly, and as he talked they had gone to a part of the
vessel a little removed from the crowd.

“Oh, Herbert,” Louie said, when he gave her a chance to speak, “I am so
glad you came. It is dreadful to be here all alone, with no one to say
good-by.”

“Of course I’d come,” he replied: “but where is your mother I must see
her.”

Louie hesitated a moment, and then replied, “We are second-class
passengers and she is with them. I left her and came over here where I
do not belong. I shall only stay a few minutes.”

“Second-class! Heavens and earth! You second-class!” and Herbert leaped
to his feet and stared at Louie as if she had told him she was guilty of
a crime.

“Yes, second-class,” she answered. “We cannot afford the high price of
the first, and really we are very comfortable, and the voyage will be
short. We shall be divided from the first, like goats from sheep, you
know; but that doesn’t matter. There are ever so many respectable people
second-class with us—professors and clergymen and students. We shall do
very well.”

“Yes, but I don’t like it, and if I could I’d pay the difference and
have you moved,” Herbert said.

“I should not allow it,” Louie replied. “We might have gone first-class,
for the people in Merivale were very kind and offered to send us that
way, but I could not take anything from them. They have lost too much by
us. We have paid some of them, though—all the poor depositors and some
of the others who were needing the money. The sale of the house and
horses and carriage and diamonds did that. We had, of course, to keep
enough to live upon. I have never heard who the man was who bought the
house of Mr. Blake and let us live there free. I have written to him and
thanked him.”

She was talking rapidly, for time was passing and she had much to say,
while Herbert listened with his eyes fixed on her face, which was
flushed with excitement as she talked.

“You have written to him?” he repeated.

“Yes,” she replied. “Mr. Blake was to direct and mail the letter, and
some time I hope to see or hear from him. Do you think I ever shall?”

“I think you will,” Herbert answered, half resolved to tell her his
suspicions, and wondering if she did not know that Fred Lansing was
abroad, and probably in Paris. But he merely said, “I suppose you still
have the stage in mind?”

“Yes, if it will help pay father’s debts. I am pledged to that, you
know,” she replied.

“Oh, Louie,” Herbert went on, “I’d almost rather see you dead than a
public singer. You can’t know what it involves. Don’t do it. Let the
debts go. Other people do and are just as well respected.”

He did not know what he was saying in his excitement. The crowd was
moving toward the gangway. The signal for visitors’ departure had been
given, and he must go and leave behind the girl who never seemed dearer
to him than now, when he was losing her forever—not on the stage, but
with Fred Lansing. He was sure of it, and felt that he could not give
her up. Had he had the money for his passage, he would have gone with
her—second-class, if necessary—and as it was, there passed through his
mind the wild idea of making himself a stowaway and going at all
hazards, paying after he reached Liverpool and could send to his father.

There was a great rush for the gangway, and he was in the midst of it,
holding Louie’s hand, when some one called to him.

“Why, Mr. White, you here? Are you going? I’m so glad.”

It was a tall young girl, and at the sound of her voice Herbert dropped
Louie’s hand, and with a “God bless you; good-by,” lost himself in the
crowd nearest the young girl.

When Louie next saw him he was on the wharf, waving his hat first to her
and then to a group of three who were presumably Mr. Le Barron and his
sisters. Herbert had not presented her to them, nor to the doctor, who
was to be more attentive to her because of the presentation.




                              CHAPTER XX.
                           ON THE OTHER SIDE


The voyage was a short one, but to Louie it seemed an eternity. The
weather was very rough, and almost with the first beat of the engine as
the ship left the wharf Mrs. Grey succumbed to sea-sickness and never
left her state-room during the voyage. A part of the time she was
delirious, and raved of her dead husband and her home in Merivale,
begging Louie to take her back there to die, or stop the ship, whose
rolling and pitching was killing her. Nearly all the second-class
passengers were ill except Louie, who, with a mighty will, withstood the
sickness and ministered to her mother night and day until her strength
gave way, and the young doctor whom Herbert knew found her lying
insensible on the floor when he came to see her mother. It made no
difference to him whether his patients were first or second-class; and
if it had, Louie’s face and helplessness would have enlisted his
sympathy. He knew nothing of her acquaintance with Herbert, although he
had exchanged a few words with that young man as he left the vessel. She
was a stranger in trouble, and he cared for her till she was able to
resume her post at her mother’s side. As the voyage neared its end, and
the sea became smoother, Louie hoped her mother would improve. But she
seemed to have no life left and was as helpless as a child.

“Oh, what shall I do when we get there?” Louie often asked herself; and
when at last the tug from the great ship was sailing slowly into port,
there was not on board so forlorn and hopeless a creature as the young
girl who stood looking wistfully at the shore and the people upon it,
some waiting for expected friends, and some of them the custom-house
officers, waiting to pounce upon their prey the moment they landed.

It was these Louie dreaded, not knowing what she had to expect or how to
cope with them. She had nothing dutiable, but she knew there must be a
delay before she could get her baggage. And what, meantime, should she
do with her mother, who could scarcely hold up her head, and was taking
little heed of what was passing around her?

“God help me,” she whispered as she went to her mother and said,
“Mother, we are at the landing. Can you walk?”

“No,” came faintly from the sick woman. “You go and leave me here to
die.”

At this point an officer, who chanced to be near, said to Louie:

“Go on shore and get some one to bring a chair. She is too ill to walk.”

“Oh, thank you! And will you stay by her?” Louie said.

It was a great deal to ask an officer of a British steamer to do, but
something in Louie’s face and eyes pleaded for her, and the man answered
with a smile:

“I will see that she is not left alone; and, stay, there is a deck
steward now, just off the boat. Hurry and speak to him. Say I sent you.”

Louie needed no further bidding, but made her way on shore as quickly as
she could for the crowd jostling each other, and each intent upon his or
her own business. The deck steward had disappeared, and, turn which way
she would, Louie could see no one on whom she dared call for help. The
crowd was pushing her farther from the boat. Friends were greeting
friends; there were calls for hands to help with the baggage, and to
Louie it seemed as if pandemonium reigned, and she felt her strength
giving way, when suddenly heaven opened before her as Fred Lansing put
both his hands upon her shoulders, and said, not “Louie,” as Herbert had
done, but “Miss Grey, you are here. What can I do for you?”

She did not stop to ask why he was there, or how he knew she was there,
but answered:

“I am trying to find some one to help mother. She is sick on the boat.”

He asked no more questions, but seemed to know exactly what to do.
Passing his arm around Louie, who, he saw, was near fainting, he said:

“Take me to your mother, and don’t be afraid. I will see to it.”

Louie could never remember exactly what he did, or how it was done. She
only knew that in a short time her mother was on shore, in a carriage
nearly as luxurious and easy as their own had been. Then Mr. Lansing
said to her:

“Come with me, please, and show me your baggage.”

She went with him and felt herself growing stronger as she saw how cool
and masterful he was, and how every one listened to him. Returning with
her to the carriage, he said:

“Give me your keys, please. Those custom-house officers will ask for
them. I will send you to the hotel, and join you there later.”

He spoke a few words to the driver, touched his hat to the ladies, and
walked rapidly back to where bags and boxes were being opened, and
brandy and tobacco and dynamite looked for by the officers.

Mrs. Grey was wholly bewildered and half unconscious when the carriage
reached the hotel, from which a lackey came out, and was joined by one
or two more when Louie gave the names, “Mrs. and Miss Grey.” The former
was taken carefully into the house and up to the second floor to a
large, airy room with which a smaller room communicated. A highly
respectable-looking woman, who called herself Mrs. Brown, came in, and
offered her services in getting Mrs. Grey into bed, where she dropped
asleep at once.

Turning to Louie, the woman said: “If Miss will allow me, I will suggest
that she, too, go to bed in the next room. You look wholly, utterly
exhausted. I will sit with your mother till the gentleman comes.”

Louie shook her head, thinking she must wait till Mr. Lansing came, to
know what it all meant. These handsome rooms she had not ordered, and
this woman, whose attentions were almost obsequious was a puzzle to her.
Was there a mistake and had she and her mother been taken for some
distinguished and expected guests, and what would the people say, if
they knew they were only the widow and daughter of a bankrupt?

“I must stay with mother,” she said, “and I don’t believe these rooms
were meant for us.”

“Yes, they were,” the woman replied, “if you are Mrs. and Miss Grey,
from America. The young gentleman was very particular about them. Your
cousin, perhaps?”

Louie did not answer. Her head was in a whirl, and she felt so dizzy and
faint and tired that she made no remonstrance when Mrs. Brown suggested
again that she lie down in the next room.

“I’ll take the lounge, so as to be ready to get up the moment mother
wants me, or Mr. Lansing comes,” she said.

She took the lounge, which was so wide and comfortable, and the cushions
were so soft, and she was so tired, that she fell into a heavy sleep,
from which she did not waken until it was dark, and she heard voices in
the next room. Fred Lansing and a stranger were talking together, and
the latter, who she guessed was a physician, said:

“I hope it is nothing more serious than nervous prostration and extreme
exhaustion, caused by severe sea-sickness. After a few days’ rest you
can safely take her to London. I will send a good nurse, if you wish
it.”

They were talking of her mother, she knew, and in a moment she was in
the room, looking at Fred Lansing with her great brown eyes full of
inquiry and entreaty.

“I think this young lady needs some attention,” Fred said, and Louie
felt her wrist grasped in a strong hand which held her a moment, while
the doctor counted her pulse and studied her face.

Then, releasing her, he said, with a laugh:

“Needs a good dinner more than anything, and then a good night’s rest.
She has youth and health.”

He would have liked to have added “beauty,” for Louie’s face stirred
even his sixty-year-old heart a little.

“She shall have the dinner at once,” Mr. Lansing said, bowing him out,
and returning to Louie, who felt that she did not know exactly where she
was or why she was there.

One fact stood distinctly before her. They could not afford all this
luxury. Perhaps Mr. Lansing did not know what had happened, and how poor
they were, and she must tell him.

“Mr. Lansing,” she began, when he said to her, “We will go to dinner as
soon as Brown comes up to stay with your mother.”

“Mr. Lansing, I don’t know how you happened to come to meet us. But am
so glad you did. I think I was nearly crazy with fright when I met you,
and you have been so kind since, but I must tell you. Don’t these rooms
cost a great deal of money?”

“Why, no; not so very much,” he answered, and she continued:

“This is the Northwestern, isn’t it? We expected to go to some cheap
place, if I could find it. Maybe you don’t know how poor we are, and
father is dead—failed, and couldn’t pay, do you know?”

Her face was crimson with shame as she talked, and when she was through
she covered it with her hands and cried like a child.

Fred would like to have taken her hands from her face and kissed her
tears away, so fast had his love grown for this little girl since he
last saw her in Merivale. He could not forget her, and the bit of worn
linen he had purloined was kept sacred for her sake, because it was all
he had as a souvenir of her except the memory of her bright face and
beautiful eyes, which had always brightened when he came and been
downcast when he looked at her.

“If my cousin were not in the field before me, I believe I could win
her,” he had often said to himself, wondering how it fared with the
young people, and if the secret were still kept from the public.

He had heard from Herbert several times after leaving Merivale, and in
his letters there was always a mention of Louie. It was Herbert, too,
who had first written him news of the failure, saying very little of Mr.
Grey’s delinquencies, and nothing of Louie, except that she was keeping
up bravely. He had said that Mr. Blake was assignee, and Nancy Sharp
preferred creditor, and Fred had laughed immoderately as he recalled the
red-armed woman with her twenty hard silver dollars which had been the
rounds so many times, and hoped she had received them intact. From
Boston and Worcester papers he learned a good deal which Herbert had not
told him, but it was from Mr. Blake that he received full particulars in
response to a letter sent to the assignee. He knew of the sale of the
piano and wheel and diamonds and horses, and Louie’s wish to sell the
house, and it was at his instigation that Mr. Blake bought it in his own
name, to blind the people, and then resold it to Fred, whose injunction
was “Keep me out of sight at all hazards.”

“Perhaps I am rash,” he said to Miss Percy and his mother, “but I cannot
begin to spend my income, and a few thousands may as well be sunk in
Merivale as anywhere.”

When Mr. Grey died it was Mr. Blake who wrote the particulars to Fred,
and in his letter no mention was made of Herbert, nor had there been in
any of the correspondence. Evidently the engagement was still a secret,
if, indeed, it were not broken. Fred thought the latter contingency
possible, knowing Herbert’s nature and his fear of his father.

It was Fred who encouraged Miss Percy to insist upon Louie’s coming
abroad as soon as possible, and then went to meet the ship in which she
was to sail. He had not expected to find Mrs. Grey so ill, and at first
all his care was given to her. Now, however, as she was sleeping
quietly, he had a little time for Louie, and when she told him of her
poverty, and asked if he knew of her father’s failure and death, he said
to her:

“Yes, I think I know everything. Mr. Blake has kept us posted. I know
what you did to save your father, and what you have done to pay his
debts. You have been a brave girl, and I want to help you, and that is
why I came to meet you, knowing as I did how forlorn it would be for you
to land alone in a foreign country and encounter those sharks at the
Custom House. Miss Percy thought of coming with me, but that was not
necessary. This is the Northwestern, and these rooms are perhaps a
trifle more expensive than you would have chosen. But for the present
you are my guests. We are old acquaintances, and Herbert will be glad to
know you are comfortable. You and he are good friends still?”

Fred had not hinted a word of the engagement, but he felt that he must
know something from which to draw a conclusion, and said what he did to
Louie, who, without thinking what his question implied, answered at
once:

“Oh, yes, good friends still and always will be. We agreed to that. He
came to the boat to see us off, which was very kind of him. Do you hear
from him often?”

Fred could scarcely answer for the gladness beating in his heart. Surely
Louie’s words meant that whatever had been between herself and Herbert
was over now, and they were only good friends. Still, he would go slowly
and bide his time. She was young and he was not very old. She had that
idea of paying her father’s debts in her mind, and until that was given
up he must watch over and help her without her knowing it. She told him
of the stranger who had bought their house for ten thousand dollars,
which had gone far toward paying the smaller debts.

“We had to keep some to live on. Mr. Blake said we could as it was ours
to do with as we pleased, but I shall pay it back. It was very kind in
the stranger to let us stay in the house and I shall pay him the rent.
Mr. Blake would not tell his name, nor where he lived, but I wrote to
him just before I left home, and I hope he will answer me.”

“You wrote to him?” Fred asked, with a glad light in his eyes. “I am
sure he will be pleased to get your letter. Perhaps he had heard what a
heroic little girl you were and wanted to help you; but here comes
Brown, and now for that dinner—your first on English soil. I hope you
will like it.”

She could not help liking it, and felt her strength and life coming back
to her, while Fred saw the change in her face and eyes, and thought how
fair she was, and thought, too, of a time in the future when she would
be fairer still, because of the great love with which he would encircle
her, taking every care away and making her life all a holiday.

They had hoped Mrs. Grey would rally the next day sufficiently to sit up
a little, but she didn’t; nor did she seem to realize where she was, but
talked of Merivale and her old home and her husband, who seemed to be
with her. Still the physician said there was no danger in moving her
after a little, they were so near the train, and she would have every
possible comfort in the special car in which the journey to London was
finally accomplished, easily and quickly.

Once when they stopped at a station, a dispatch was handed to Fred, who,
after reading it, seemed very happy and almost gay, until London was
reached.

It was a cold, raw day, and a fog was settling in the streets through
which they drove very slowly in the large, roomy carriage in which Mrs.
Grey half sat, half lay among cushions and shawls, and attended by the
nurse who accompanied them from Liverpool.

Very anxiously Louie peered out into the darkness and fog, seeing
nothing distinctly until they drew up suddenly before a brilliantly
lighted hotel, where many hands were extended to carry Mrs. Grey to
rooms far more luxuriously furnished than those in Liverpool. There was
a salon and two sleeping-rooms and bath attached, and into one of the
sleeping-rooms Mrs. Grey was taken and laid upon the bed, saying as she
felt the warmth of the soft pillow and blankets around her:

“This is like home in the best room. Let’s stay here awhile. I’m so
tired, and the ship rolled so terribly.”

Nothing surprised her, nor mattered, so long as Louie was with her; nor
did she open her eyes when a voice different from Louie’s or Fred’s or
the nurse’s said to her:

“How are you feeling, Mrs. Grey? Don’t you remember me?”

Louie, who was in the other bedroom, heard and recognized the voice, and
hurrying into her mother’s room was met and embraced by Miss Percy.




                              CHAPTER XXI
                              AT THE SAVOY


It had been Fred’s intention to hurry on to Paris and the pleasant house
near the Arch of Triumph, occupied by his mother and Miss Percy. But
when he saw how weak Mrs. Grey was, he gave up that idea, and wired to
Miss Percy to meet him, if possible, at the Savoy, in London, and have
rooms ready for Mrs. Grey and Louie. It was her answer received on the
train, which made him so glad by relieving him from a load of anxiety.
He felt that Mrs. Grey was seriously ill, and needed the support of some
woman besides the nurse. Something, too, in Louie’s face warned him that
the excitement of the last few months, and the fatigue of the voyage
were telling upon her. He might nurse her himself. He would rather like
the job; but somebody must care for Mrs. Grey, and no one could be
better than Miss Percy, who had hurried to London, and secured the best
accommodations possible for the party.

“Don’t say a word. You are to keep quiet,” she said, when Louie began to
protest and try to explain. “I know everything from Mr. Blake, to whom I
wrote, asking for particulars, and only wish I had been there to help
you. I have long wanted something to do—something to care for and divert
my mind. I have you at last, and am glad. So sit still and take the good
the gods provide.”

And Louie took the good. In fact, she was too tired and worn to do much
else than sit still and let others care for her and her mother. The
latter did not improve as they hoped she might. It was more than nervous
exhaustion. It was a general breaking up of all the life centers of her
being, and she could not rally. For the most of the time she thought
herself at home, but nearly always seemed to know that her husband was
dead. Sometimes she talked to him, and told him she was coming to join
him and that everything he had left in a tangle would be straightened by
Louie and Mr. Lansing. She frequently coupled their names together; and
Louie’s cheeks would burn as she heard it, and then turn white, with the
fear gathering strength day by day as she sat by her mother’s side, and
watched the flickering flame brightening at intervals and then dying
down until it went out forever: and Louie was alone so far as her mother
was concerned, but surrounded with everything which love and sympathy
could devise to comfort her.

For weeks a chilly fog had hung over the great city, but it cleared at
last, and the wintry sun shone bright and warm upon the grave in Kensal
Green where Mrs. Grey was buried, while Miss Percy and Fred Lansing
stood on either side of Louie, whose face was white as that of the
corpse the coffin covered from her sight.

“I know you are trying to comfort me,” she said, as they were driving
back to the hotel, “and by and by I shall thank you, but I can’t talk
now, I am so sorry, and so tired and so sick.”

They knew she was sick, and the physician and nurse who had attended her
mother were retained for her during the weeks which followed, when she
hovered between life and death, battling with exhaustion and brain fever
in its worst form, and cared for with all the sympathy of a sister by
Miss Percy, and all the devotion of a lover by Fred Lansing, who watched
by her constantly, with a terrible fear in his heart that the treasure
he coveted might be snatched from him just as its possession seemed
possible. Mrs. Lansing, too, who seldom evinced much interest in anyone
outside her family, was interested in this young girl, who she felt
intuitively would some day be her daughter-in-law, and she sat by the
bedside many an hour when she would otherwise have been resting in her
own room.

A cablegram announcing Mrs. Grey’s death and Louie’s illness had gone to
Merivale, where Herbert was spending his Christmas vacation. Prayers
were said for the sick in the little stone church, where the judge’s
amen was louder, if possible, than it had been when Mr. Grey died; while
the book Herbert held was wet with tears for the girl who was to have
been his wife, and for whom his heart was aching with a dull, heavy
pain. He knew she could never be his. If she lived Fred Lansing would
claim her, and “he ought to have her,” he said to himself; and that day
he wrote to Fred, telling him of the broken engagement and saying:

“I am human, and sometimes feel that I would rather know she was dead
than the wife of another than myself. But that is selfish and mean, and
I give her to you, knowing how worthy you are of her, and how happy she
will be with you.”

Other letters came from Merivale, and among them one from Nancy Sharp,
wonderful in composition and spelling. She had heard, she said, that the
Grey house was to be closed for the winter, so far as a genteel family
was concerned, but that some honest, respectable person, or persons were
wanted to live in the rear, and take charge of it until the owner
claimed it; and as she was both respectable and honest, she had applied
for the situation and got it, and was, as she expressed it, “happy as a
clam,” with stationary tubs and plenty of room for her clothes to dry in
the back yard. She did not suppose the Almighty cared for the prayers of
an old scrub like her, but she prayed, just the same, three times a
day—on her knees, too—that Louie might get well, and she felt it in her
bones that she would, and come back some day to the old home which she
would find in apple-pie order.

“I don’t use the drawin’, nor sittin’, nor dinin’, nor best sleepin’
rooms, of course,” she wrote. “I keep ’em swep’ and dusted and aired,
and live in the kitchen and but’ry, and bedroom off, and am happy as the
day is long, for it’s quite a hist from White’s Row to this grand
house.”

This letter, with others directed to Louie, from Merivale, Fred put
away, waiting for the time when she would understand their contents, if
that time ever came. She was very ill, and every day seemed going lower
down into the shadow of death. From the first she was delirious and
talked of the failure, and the hours passed with her father in the bank
listening to the angry roar of the crowd outside; of the wild, rainy
night when she faced the Session alone, while Herbert sat on the
dry-goods box in the hall. Once she spoke of a young man with a bullet
in his brain and his half-open eyes staring at her as they did at her
father, but only Fred heard her, and he did not understand. From her
ravings he learned more of what she had passed through than Mr. Blake
had told them, and his great, kind heart yearned with sympathy and pity
for the young girl who seemed so crushed and broken and ashamed. She
dwelt a great deal upon that, as if she in some way were to blame for
what had happened. “We didn’t suspect the truth or we would have lived
differently,” she said, “but I shall pay it all.” Sometimes it seemed to
dawn upon her that she might never be able to pay the debts; then she
would wring her hands and cry piteously, “Who will do it, if I can’t?”

Once, when alone with her, and her plaintive cry, “Who will do it?” was
repeated again and again, Fred bent so close to her that her hot,
feverish breath stirred his hair, and said, “Louie! Louie!”

He had always called her Miss Grey, and now, at the sound of her old
familiar name, she opened her eyes, bright with delirium, and asked,
“Who is calling me Louie, as they used to do so long ago?”

“I,” Fred answered her, “Fred Lansing. Don’t you know me?”

“I don’t quite think I do,” she said, with her eyes still fixed upon
him. “You seem a little like Herbert. I knew him long ago, in the woods
and on the river, and everywhere. But that is all over, and I gave him
back the ring, which I never wore, for fear of his father, you know.”

“Yes, I know,” Fred said, taking the hot hands which were beating the
air. “I know; and, Louie, don’t be troubled about those debts. I will
pay them all if you never can. Be quiet now and get well.”

“Yes, get well, so as to sing. That’s what I must do; and I am so tired,
and the keys in my throat are all out of tune. Listen,” and she tried a
few notes of her famous bird-song on which so much depended.

At first her voice was clear as a canary’s, and some like it, and then
it broke and died away in a faint, gurgling sound pitiful to hear.

“What a discord!” she said, with a laugh which was half a cry; “and
hark! how the people hiss and jeer, when I expected applause. I can’t do
it. I can’t.”

This was her cry many times a day, as she tried to sing, and always
broke down with the sobbing words, “I can’t, I can’t! There is something
choking me, and they hiss me so for my father. I didn’t know it. I was
not to blame, and he was so sorry for it all.”

At last the effort to sing ceased, and she was so still that the
stillness was worse than the singing; it was so much like death, as she
lay with her eyes closed, and the hands which had beaten the air so
restlessly lying just where they were put, with no appearance of life in
them.

It was better so, the doctor said, as she was not wearing her strength
away. She was young. She had strong recuperative powers, and would
recover with close care and nursing.

There was no lack of these. The best nurses London could afford were
called to her aid, while either Miss Percy, or Fred, or his mother, who
had joined them, was with her constantly. Fred’s voice she always knew,
and it was Fred who, when she seemed drifting far out on the tide which
has no turning, brought her back to a semblance of life and
consciousness.

“Louie! Louie!” he cried in an agony, when the pallor settled around her
mouth and the pinched look came upon her face, which made the trained
nurse throw up her hands in despair, “Louie! Louie, come back to us! You
must not die!” he said, and something in his voice penetrated through
the films of darkness settling upon her.

There was a slight movement of her head, as if listening, and the
doctor, who was watching, said,

“Speak to her again. Call her name.”

“Louie! Louie! come back. I want you,” Fred said, his voice trembling
with the intensity of his feelings.

There was a movement of suspense, a long, gasping sigh like a sob of
relief, and Louie whispered,

“I am trying to come, but it is so dark, and I am so tired, and the
river runs so fast. Somebody must meet me on the way. I cannot come
alone!”

Whether Fred or any one met her on the way, none could tell, but from
that time she rallied, and within a few days the joyful message went
across the water to Merivale:

“The crisis is passed; she will live.”

As the physician had said, she had youth and strength and great
recuperative powers, and her recovery was rapid when once it commenced;
and after a week or two the family returned to Paris, and then went by
easy stages to Florence, where the remainder of the winter was passed,
and where Louie’s health and strength and beauty came back to her, the
latter enhanced by the tinge of sadness her face always wore when she
thought of the two graves, one in America and one in Kensal Green, where
Fred told her he had ordered a stone erected in memory of her mother,
but did not add that he had ordered a similar one to be placed at her
father’s grave in Merivale.




                              CHAPTER XXII
                                IN PARIS


With renewed health Louie began to be impatient to begin her life work,
as she called it. Miss Percy and the Lansings would like to have spent
the late spring among the Italian lakes, and the summer in Switzerland;
but they yielded to Louie’s wishes, and the last of April found them
again in Paris, occupying what, during the empire, had been a palace,
but was now let to anyone with money enough to rent and keep it up, with
the grounds around it. Both Miss Percy and the Lansings had the money,
and no princess was ever more luxuriously lodged and cared for than
Louie, who for a few days abandoned herself to the pleasure of seeing
the city, sometimes with Mrs. Lansing and Miss Percy, but oftener with
Fred, who knew every point of interest, and made it doubly interesting
by his own enthusiasm. For the gay shops Louie cared nothing. She should
never wear anything but black, she said, and she looked so pure and
sweet in her simple mourning, which so effectively brought out the
brilliancy of her complexion and the brightness of her eyes, that
strangers turned to look at her as she walked through the picture
galleries, or drove in the Bois de Boulogne. The French called her La
Belle Americaine, and the English and Germans called her Fred Lansing’s
fiancée, the young men envying him the prize he had won, and the young
women envying her her beauty, of which she seemed wholly unconscious.

Her looks were of small moment to her. Nothing mattered much but her
voice, which was soon to be tested—not to see if it were worth
cultivation, she thought, but to see how much it was worth and how long
it would take before she could try her wings. If occasionally a spasm of
pain contracted her throat, or something rose up and choked her when she
tried a high note, it caused her no fear. She had experienced the like
before, and it had passed away. She was a little nervous, that was all,
she said, and did not guess how anxious Mrs. Lansing and Miss Percy and
Fred were when the day of trial came. She only thought how very kind and
gentle and tender they were towards her, as a mother is towards her
child when a painful ordeal is in store for it. She had no real fear.
She was eager for the trial, hoping that in a year she could begin to
earn something to send home, to show the people she was keeping faith
with them. She had a list of all the debts, and knew just how much was
owing still, and to whom, and which ones she should pay first. It looked
like a heavy load, and as she went over the amounts with Fred, who was
quite as much interested as herself, her lips quivered a little as she
said, “It is a big lot, but I can do it in time. Don’t you think so?”

Fred pretended not to hear her, as he was writing down the names of the
creditors and the amount of indebtedness; but he pitied her, for with
Miss Percy, who was a better judge than himself, a suspicion had been
growing in his mind which boded no good for poor little Louie; and when
the voice which was to do so much was tried and found wanting, because
the quality which had made it so rich and musical, and the power to
raise the higher notes, without huskiness or breaking, were gone, it was
Fred’s arms which encircled the half fainting girl, and Fred who first
tried to comfort her.

“Please don’t speak to me now; go away,” she said to him when, after
their return home, he found her in a little recess off from the salon,
lying upon a couch in an abandonment of grief. “I can’t cry, and my
throat feels like bursting. It is worse than death,” she said, at last,
as he did not go away. “Everything has failed me. Father and mother
dead—my home gone, and now my voice, with which I meant to do so much.
It may come back, they said, but I know it never will. Something gave
way in my throat when they told me, and I don’t believe I could sing a
note now if my life depended upon it. I wish I had died with mother!”

It was hard, and for a time nothing they could say or do comforted her,
or availed to rouse her from the state of apathy into which she had
fallen. It was in vain that Miss Percy said to her, “I have adopted you
as my young sister. You will live with me always. I want you.” Louie
only answered, “It isn’t that. It isn’t myself I care for. I can earn my
own living somehow. It is the people—father’s creditors. I promised to
pay them, and I never can.”

She did not cry. If she had, it would have been better, and her eyes
would not have looked so dry and red and unnaturally bright as they did,
or her smile have been so rare and sad.

As there was no longer any necessity for staying in Paris, they went to
Switzerland, where, in the exhilarating atmosphere and among the grand
scenery, her spirits rallied a little, and occasionally her merry laugh
was heard in the châlet which they occupied, near Geneva.

It was here that a pile of papers came to Fred one morning, together
with two or three letters for Louie, one of them in Nancy Sharp’s
unmistakable handwriting. Nancy had written at intervals, feeling it her
duty to keep Louie posted with regard to the house and the news of the
town, every little item of which she wrote in her own peculiar style.
These letters had usually interested Louie greatly, Nancy’s descriptions
were so graphic and to the point. Sometimes there was a fling at Judge
White, who “grew more fussy and big feelin’ all the time,” she wrote,
“but hadn’t a dollar of her money in his bank. That was safe—some in a
sugar-bowl, some in a tea-pot, and some in—she guessed she wouldn’t tell
where, for fear it might leak out.” Godfrey Sheldon, too, came in for a
share of sarcasm. “A nobody and an upstart, ridin’ with liver on the
box; but she must say he kept Jack and Jill lookin’ well; if he didn’t,
she would complain’ to the humanes and have him ‘rested.” Such and
similar items were the substance of Nancy’s letters; and when Fred saw
her handwriting on the last one received, he knew there was a budget of
home news for Louie such as no one else could write, and knew, too, that
in all human probability there was one item which would startle her, and
he meant to be present when the blow fell.

“Here is a letter from Nancy,” he said, giving it to her. “I am always
interested in what the old lady says.”

Louie was alone in the salon, as Mrs. Lansing and Miss Percy had gone
that day to Coppet with a party. Taking the letter, she broke the seal
and began to read, her eyes growing larger and darker and her face
whiter as she read,


“I must tell you fust of the hullabelloo there was in town when word
come that the dets was awl to be pade, as soon as the clames was bro’t
to Mr. Blake. Such a runnin’ of wimmen tellin’ the nuse was never seen
since the run and the failure. One woman stood on her steps and yelled
to the fokes passin’ up and down, four men rung the bell to call the
fokes together, and Godfrey Sheldon come ni’ havin’ a fit, he was so
tickled to get his money agin. Awl pade, every scent, by Mr. Lansing,
they say, for of course you hain’t sung long enuff to git all that
money, and fokes do say they’s somethin’ betwixt you an’ him. I hope to
the land there is. He’s ’nuff site better’n that white-livered Herbert,
who’s got to partin’ his hare in the middle and carryin’ a cain.”


Louie read no further than this before she burst into a paroxysm of
weeping such as she had not known for weeks.

“Oh, this is too much! How could he?” she said aloud, and in a moment
the he referred to had his arm around her, holding her so fast that she
could not get away.

“Louie,” he said, “I think I know what Nancy has written, and I want you
to listen to me a moment.”

She would not listen at first, but kept saying, “How could you? How
could you?”

“Louie,” he persisted, “which would you rather do—owe a great many
people, some of whom need the money, or, owe one who does not need it,
and, if necessary, can wait forever? Try and consider yourself my
debtor.”

His arm had tightened round her, and he was holding her very close to
him as he talked, till gradually she grew calm and said:

“I know it is very kind in you, and few would have done it. But it will
be so long before I can pay you, if I ever do, and that is very
humiliating. I owe you so much already.”

Herbert had once said of Fred that if he were ever in love he would leap
over the precipice without a thought of the consequences, and that was
just what he did do. Without stopping to consider whether it were the
time or the place, or Louie in a condition to hear him, he got both her
hands in his, and held them while he told her how she could pay him, and
that he believed he had loved her ever since the day when she worked so
bravely to save his uncle’s bank.

“It certainly began then,” he said, “and has gone on increasing ever
since, until now it will be very hard to give you up.”

He did not speak of the worn napkin he had kept because her hands had
hemmed it, and that it always brought to his mind the picture of a
little girl in a bib apron and white sun-bonnet, whom his aunt had
described. To tell her that would remind her of a time he would have her
forget, and he dwelt most upon his present feelings and his great love
for her.

When Herbert proposed to her, she fell asleep, and she seemed to do so
now, she sat so still, with her head bent so low that Fred could not see
her face. During her illness, and the excitement which had preceded and
followed it, she had not had time to ask herself what her real feelings
were for Fred Lansing, or what his were for her. His attentions had been
so delicate and unobtrusive, and she had received them without
questioning until now, when it came to her that she loved him as she had
never loved Herbert White, and that it would be such bliss to put her
tired head upon his breast and lay all her care upon his broad
shoulders.

“Speak to me, Louie,” he said at last, trying to look in her face. “Say
you will be my wife, and cancel that debt.”

“Oh, if I only could,” she said; “but I can’t, because of my family
history, and then—” She hesitated a moment and went on, “I once thought
I loved Herbert; I was engaged to him.”

“Yes, I know,” Fred answered, succeeding in getting her face where he
could see the side of it. “He told me at the time, or I should have
proposed to you myself. It gave me an awful pang, which I covered as
well as I could, though I think Herbert half suspected it. He has been
man enough to write and tell me that you had severed the tie, and he
said some things not very complimentary to himself for his cowardice in
keeping his engagement a secret. I think he expects this finale to our
acquaintance. I know Miss Percy does, and my mother, and both will be
glad.”

“But,” Louie said, “my debt, and my voice, and my career?”

“The debt is paid when you give yourself to me,” Fred answered. “Your
voice will come back in time, and be all my own; and, as for the career,
I have not the prejudice against the stage which Herbert has, but I
always hoped you would be saved from it in some way. I would rather not
have my wife before the footlights, for a promiscuous crowd to admire
and applaud, and you are to be my wife.”

He spoke both interrogatively and affirmatively, and stooped to kiss
her; but she drew back from him, as she had from Herbert, and said:

“I have not promised yet. I must have time to think. I must talk with
Miss Percy.”

Fred knew his cause was safe in that direction, and did not urge his
suit further then. He felt so sure that he could wait, and when his
mother and Miss Percy came from Coppet, he told them what he had done,
and that he depended upon them as coadjutors, with no misgivings as to
the result.




                             CHAPTER XXIII
                          LOUIE AND MISS PERCY


It was a rather wakeful night which Louie passed, but a happy one. With
Fred Lansing’s love, life, which had seemed so black and dreary, looked
very bright to her, although there was a feeling of humility in her
heart that her father’s debts should be paid by him. And yet the thought
that it was his great love which prompted it robbed the humility of much
of its bitterness, and it was a very happy young girl who went to Miss
Percy the next morning as she was taking her coffee in her room.

“I think I know what you have come to tell me,” Miss Percy said. “I saw
Fred last night, and I am very glad. I knew it was coming long ago. You
have won a noble man with, I may almost say, no faults, unless it be
that he is a little too chary of his real feelings, which make him seem
cold and proud when he is neither.”

“But it hurts me that he should pay the debts for me when I wanted to do
it myself,” Louie said.

“Yes, dear, I know,” Miss Percy replied; “but God has willed it
otherwise. He has taken away your voice for a time, and in its place has
given you this friend to do your work for you. He often opens one door
when he shuts another. He does not forget us when we feel the most
alone. The mother who leaves her little child in one room while she goes
into another, does not forget it. She hears its cry, and in time goes
back to it full of tenderness and love for the disquiet she has caused
it. So with God, he comes back to us when we have been shut in the
darkest of rooms, groping blindly for a ray of light. I found it so
once, when the darkness was so thick that I felt it covering me like a
pall, and in the whole world there seemed nothing worth living for,
because my twin-brother Brant was dead.”

Louie had never seen her in such a mood before, or heard her talk in
this way. She was very pale, and said her head ached; but when Louie
arose to leave her she bade her stay, and said:

“I am not myself this morning, but I want to talk to some one. I have
taken you for my sister. I will have no secrets from you. This is the
anniversary of my brother’s death. You know I had one, and lost him.”

Louie nodded, and Miss Percy continued: “Let me tell you about him, and
you will know better why I always wear black, and am sometimes so sad.
He was all the world to me, for we were orphans, and wards of Fred’s
father. Although my twin, he seemed younger than myself, with his fair,
boyish face, and I watched over him as if I had been his mother. Somehow
and somewhere—possibly at Monte Carlo, where we spent some weeks, he
acquired a taste for play. Perhaps it was born with him and he could not
help it, although he tried at times. It was a mania, stronger than his
will, and nothing could win him from it. I am afraid he was weak in some
respects, for he fancied himself an expert, able to cope with the most
experienced gamblers, and success turned his head. Some years ago he
made a trip West, promising me before he left that he would not touch a
card. But he broke his word; and at Butte, in Montana, he fell in with a
professional, who tempted him to play, letting him win at first, they
said, so as to lure him on, and then wiping him out. I believe that is
the term they used when telling me of it. He lost thousands and then
took his own life—shot himself through the temple—my fair-faced brother
whom I idolized. That was six years ago, when the dreadful news flashed
across the wires to Washington, ‘Brant Percy shot himself early this
morning. We await orders.’

“I could have died for him, I think, and in my first bitter anguish I
cursed the man who lured him to ruin. Cursed him and his. I don’t know
who he was, except that his name was _Tom Crary_, and he was well known
in that region as an accomplished gambler. Where he is now, if still
living and carrying on his nefarious work, I do not know, but I have
learned to pray for him since the bitterness is gone, and I hope my
curse has not followed him.”

“It has! It has!” Louie cried, stretching out her hands for something to
keep herself from falling, everything around her was so dark, and there
was such a buzzing in her head and nausea at her stomach.

Miss Percy was alarmed at the whiteness of her face and the strained
look in her eyes, and put out her hand to steady her as she saw her
falling in her chair.

“Don’t touch me,” Louie said, “I am only worthy to kneel in the dust at
your feet and beg your pardon for my father’s sin. It was he who played
with the young man in Butte. I didn’t know it till just before he died,
when he told me the story, but not the young man’s name, and I never
dreamed who it was. But, oh, Miss Percy, listen to me. Father didn’t
want to play at first, but the young man insisted; and when all was
lost, father offered to refund a part. He told me so, and he would not
lie with death resting on his pillow, and that young man’s face always
before him, as he said it was. He never gambled that way again, and he
repented bitterly and was so sorry, and died a good man. I know he did.
But your curse followed him, and has fallen so heavily on me, to whom
you have been so kind, but can never be again. I know it, and I must go
away from you all into the world alone and do the best I can. I wish I
could die as mother did! Oh, oh, this is worse than all the rest—that
father’s sin should confront me now, just as I was beginning to be
happy. I remember he never seemed to want to see you in Merivale, or
hear about you. He must have known who you were, and why didn’t he tell
me and save me from this humiliation. You can never want to speak to me
again, or look at me. But I didn’t know, and I could go down on my face
at your feet, but it would do no good. It would not bring your brother
back. Truly the sins of the fathers are visited upon the children, and I
can’t bear it.”

She had talked steadily until now, when she broke down and cried
bitterly, while Miss Percy sat for a moment immovable. The blow had
fallen heavily upon her, taking away all her strength and filling her
with dismay that the girl she had loved and cared for was the daughter
of the man whom, in her anguish, she had cursed as the cause of her
brother’s death. Then her strong principle and sense of justice came to
her aid. Louie was not to blame, and something in the girl’s distress
touched every chord of pity in her heart.

“Louie,” she said, winding her arm around her, “don’t give way like this
and blame yourself for what you could not help. It is a strange
Providence which has brought us together and drawn me so to you. God’s
hand is surely in it; and if you were my sister before, you are doubly
so now—taken in the place of my poor brother. Don’t cry so hard; you
frighten me.”

“I must, I must cry,” Louie said. “Please let me go to think it out and
decide what to do.”

She wrested herself from Miss Percy and left the room, meeting in the
corridor Fred, who was looking for her.

“Louie,” he said, “I want to take you to mother. I have told her, and
she is so glad.”

At sight of him Louie’s tears burst out afresh, but she did not repel
him. Something in his voice drew her to him, and with a great cry she
threw herself into his arms and sobbed:

“Just this once let me lean on you, and it shall be the last. I cannot
be your wife. I must not. Miss Percy will tell you why. Oh, Fred, I do
not mind telling you, now that it is all over, that I do love you and
always shall; but it cannot be.”

He did not at all understand her. He only knew she had called him Fred
and declared her love for him. Nothing else mattered, even if the
heavens fell. Neither Miss Percy nor mortal man should take her from
him; and he kissed her passionately again and again, while he tried to
find what had affected her so strangely.

She managed to tell him at last, while he listened, surprised and
shocked, but with his love in no sense abated for the girl, who, while
telling him all was over between them, clung to him as a drowning man
clings to a straw. Brant Percy had been his best boy friend. They had
been in school together for two years in Germany. They had travelled
over Europe, and been together at Yale until Brant, who never cared much
for books, left college and gave himself to the life which ended in his
tragic death. The last letter he ever wrote was addressed to Fred from
Butte.


“The gamest place out,” he said, “and no end of fun with the fellows who
think they know something about play. You must not tell Blanche that I
have backslidden. I promised her I would not touch a card while I was
gone, and I have not till I came here, where there is so much of it that
I caught the infection again, and it _is_ a disease which comes upon me
with such force that I cannot resist the temptation. I have been pretty
lucky, and last night tried my hand with an expert, Tom Crary, who is
looked upon as a champion player. Some say that the devil helps him;
others, that he is Satan himself, capable of seeing what his opponent
holds, and playing accordingly. But if so he is a very fascinating
Satan; in short, a perfect gentleman, with a face like a saint and
manners as winsome as a woman’s. I challenged him last night, and the
look of surprise he gave me was much like the look Goliath must have
given David when he saw the stripling coming out to fight with him. He
didn’t seem to want to play with me—evidently thought me too small fry
for his net. But I insisted, and won, too, much more than I lost. He did
not appear to care, and said to me, ‘Well, my boy, we are quits now. I
hope you are satisfied. Better let cards alone while you are in luck.’
That just fired my blood. I am not a boy, and I was not satisfied. It
was something to beat Tom Crary as I had done, and to-night we try it
again. He held off and said he’d had enough, till I hinted that he was
afraid because I knew some points of which he was ignorant. Then he
consented, and if I am not richer to-morrow by at least a thousand, and
maybe more, my name is not Brant Percy.”


Before this letter was received news came to Washington of poor Brant’s
death. His boasted skill had not prevailed against his experienced
adversary, and he had played the coward’s part by taking his own life.
With Miss Percy Fred had felt indignant at the man who had been
indirectly the cause of Brant’s death, and although he did not curse him
as she had done, he never thought of him without a feeling of horror.
And now it was proven that he was the father of the girl he loved more
than his life, and with his recollection of Mr. Grey he knew that he was
not the unprincipled man he had imagined Brant’s adversary to be. He,
like Brant, was infected with a disease he had not the strength to
resist, and his life had paid the penalty of his misdeeds. Louie was his
daughter, and he felt all his animosity against her father slipping from
him, and thought of him only as the courteous, gentlemanly man whom he
had known in Merivale.

“Louie,” he said, “you must not think I will give you up for anything
your father did. From what Brant wrote I can understand how headstrong
he was, and can see that your father tried to dissuade him from his
folly. Don’t cry so, you frighten me—and don’t talk of going away. Where
can you go. Your place is here with me,” and he folded her more closely
in his arms until her sobbing ceased and she lay very quiet, listening
to his words of love, with only an occasional long-drawn sigh and great
hot tears on her cheek.

She knew he meant all he said, but did not understand how he or anyone
could care for her now, and it was days before Miss Percy’s unchanged
kindness and Fred’s persistent love-making could win her back to
anything like herself.

“If anything more comes to me I shall die; and I should want to die now
but for you,” she said to Fred one day; and he knew then that the state
of morbid depression into which she had fallen was passing, and he
watched over her with all the care of a fond mother for the child which
has been hurt and is slowly recovering.

For this recovery Miss Percy did much, while Mrs. Lansing treated her as
if she were already her daughter.

In this manner the summer was passed in Switzerland, at different
points; and in September Italy was talked of as a place where to spend
the winter. Fred was anxious for the marriage to take place at once, but
Louie refused.

“So much has happened to me and so fast,” she said, “that I feel as if I
were weak in mind as well as body, and I must have time to rally and
know what I am doing.

“And then,” she added, with a quaver in her voice, “when I am married,
if I ever am, I want to go to Merivale and see the old place once more,
and the people, and father’s grave. Then I will go wherever you like,
and try to forget the past, which makes me sad.”

She put up her lips to be kissed, for she had learned Fred’s habit when
talking with her; and so the matter was settled for the present, and the
marriage deferred until some time in the spring, when it was to take
place in London, and the party was to sail at once for America.




                              CHAPTER XXIV
                                AT HOME


The month of May that year was unusually wet, with warm sunshine between
the rains, so that with the sun and the rain June came on apace, and by
the middle of the month the roses and the early summer flowers were in
full bloom, and nowhere in Merivale was there a lovelier spot than the
grounds around the Grey house. They had been well cared for during the
previous year, and now special pains were taken with them, and the house
as well.

The proprietor, about whom there had been so much speculation, was
expected, Mr. Blake said, and had given instructions for everything to
be put in order, from the stables to the attic, while every nook and
corner of the garden and grounds was to be cleared from weeds and put
under the highest state of cultivation.

To Nancy Sharp the news that the master was expected came as a crusher,
for that might mean a return to White’s Row, which would be a great
descent from her present quarters; but when told that she could stay on
as laundress for the family, she assumed her old assurance of manner as
preferred creditor and occupant of the finest place in town, not
excepting that of Judge White, which, if more massive and solid, could
not compete with the Grey house in grace and artistic beauty.

It was when curiosity with regard to the owner, who had been incog. so
long, was at its height that a message came from England to the effect
that Fred Lansing and Louie had been married quietly in London, and that
later on “they were coming to Merivale for a few days,” Mr. Blake said,
with a knowing wink, which told as much as words could tell, and
confirmed the people in the suspicions which had been strengthening ever
since Mr. Grey’s debts were paid by Fred Lansing.

Evidently Judge White, who had received a letter from Fred, knew more
than was in the cablegram, but he was not to tell it.

“No, sir! When I’m bound, I’m bound,” he said to some friends who were
questioning him. “I don’t know nothing, and if I did, I’m not to tell.
Wait and you’ll see. Fred Lansing has a right to do as he pleases—marry
anybody he likes; and, by George, he’s got a smart little cat, if she is
Grey’s girl; might have had—” Here he checked, himself, thinking it
better not to tell that Grey’s girl had declined the honor of a marriage
with his son. “Yes, sir,” he continued, “Fred has a right to do as he
pleases, with all his money and blood—the bluest in the land, and his
pedigree going back to the Garden of Eden, for what I know. Yes, sir;
and if he brings his wife here we ought to do something out of the
common—fireworks, or something—set pieces; one the two banks as they
used to be; only you couldn’t blow up one without the other, and mine
stood. Yes, sir, it stood!”

Every word the judge said was repeated, and more, too; and when next
morning Nancy Sharp saw Mr. Blake, who came to the house, she pounced
upon him and nearly shook the breath out of him in her fierce demands
for the truth.

“Can you keep a secret, Nancy?” Mr. Blake asked; and for answer she
produced a Bible nearly a hundred years old, which had belonged to her
mother, and offered to swear upon it to be silent as the grave if he
would tell her what she believed she already knew.

He did not require the oath, but he told her; and with a cry of “Glory
Hallelujah!” the old woman began to imitate a skirt dance she had seen
in a travelling show, and thought rather immoral. Nothing was immoral
now, if it gave vent to her joy; nothing too complicated; and she not
only tried the skirt dance, but the Highland fling she had learned when
a girl. She was sure to stay where she was, and she refused the next
washing brought her; said she was out of the business, and if folks
waited a spell they’d know why.

The next two weeks she devoted to cleaning the part of the house she had
occupied, and picking up every dried leaf and stick in the grass, and
pulling every weed in the garden and flower beds.

More artistic hands than hers had arranged the rooms with flowers and
ferns and potted plants and palms on the June day when Fred Lansing and
his bride were expected. They had been in New York a week, and now, with
Fred’s mother and Miss Percy, were coming to Merivale—as guests of Judge
White, Louie thought; and the belief marred a little the pleasure of her
home-coming.

Herbert had written a letter of congratulation, in which he had said:


“I am glad for you, Louie, but cannot forget that I once hoped to be to
you what Fred is. If there is any good in me, I owe it to you. God bless
you. I shall never marry.

                                                              “HERBERT.”


There were tears in Louie’s eyes when she read this, but Fred kissed
them away, and then began to talk of the joy of being in Merivale again
and meeting her friends, who, Mr. Blake wrote, were anxiously waiting to
see her.

“Yes,” Louie said; “I am very glad, but I wish there was some place for
us besides Judge White’s. You don’t know how I shrink from going there.
Would it be very bad to stop at the hotel?”

“Yes, darling; very bad,” Fred answered, laughing, as he thought of the
surprise in store for her.

It was one of the loveliest days in June when the New York train stopped
at the Merivale station, where, it seemed to Louie, the whole town was
assembled, reminding her of the run and the failure. This crowd,
however, was animated by very different feelings; and as cheer after
cheer went up, and her hands were grasped by friend after friend, eager
to welcome her home, she began to feel faint and nauseated as she had
felt sometimes when the shadows were darkest around her. Fred saw it and
tried to draw her from the swarming throng to his uncle’s carriage,
which the judge told him was waiting for him.

“Godfrey Sheldon is here with Jack and Jill,” he said, “and it’s like
his impudence to ask you to ride with him, but it’s fitting you should
go in my carriage, seeing I’m your kin;” then to Louie he said, as a
band struck up a lively strain of welcome, “’Pon my soul, it beats all,
how glad the folks are. Why, if ’twas the President and his lady they
couldn’t make more of a cotouse. See what ’tis to belong to my family
and the Lansings’.”

He straightened himself back till he nearly fell over, and Louie
straightened, too, and held herself proudly erect, not because she was
allied to the Whites and Lansings, but because of some feelings the
judge’s words had stirred within her. It was not for him or his pedigree
the people were making this demonstration. They were her friends and her
father’s; they had forgotten the past, and were glad to have her back,
and there was nothing to mar her joy except a wish that she was not
going to Judge White’s, where, heretofore, she had only been received as
an inferior, to be civilly treated, or patronized, which was worse.

She was in the carriage now and Fred was with her, holding her hand,
which she had involuntarily stretched out to him in her excitement. The
crowd was dispersing rapidly—some in the vehicles which had brought them
there, some on wheels, some on foot, and nearly all hurrying in the same
direction the carriage was taking.

“Where is Nancy Sharp?” Louie asked, as they drove through the town.

“That’s so,” Fred answered, as naturally as if her non-appearance had
struck him as something strange.

“I hear the owner of the house is expected. Perhaps that is keeping her.
Shall we drive there first? It will please the old lady.”

“No—yes,” Louie answered, with conflicting emotions—a longing to see her
old home and a shrinking from it.

The horses’ heads were turned into the street, through which people were
hurrying as if eager to reach some point of interest. David had driven
very slowly all the way from the station, and now he drove more slowly
still, and finally made a detour through a side street, which gave more
time to the pedestrians and others hastening to the Grey house, every
door and window of which stood open, while in the grounds and on the
piazza were many people who had been at the station.

Conspicuous among the crowd was Nancy Sharp, with the tears rolling down
her face and her voice raised above all others as she said:

“Thank God for this day, and welcome home to Mis’ Fred Lansing; and if
she can find a speck of dust, my name ain’t Nancy Sharp.”

The truth was dawning upon Louie by this time, making her so weak that
Fred was obliged to lift her from the carriage and support her after she
was upon the ground, where more cheers greeted her, with more handshakes
of welcome.

None of the people entered the house. They were only there to see “how
Louie took it,” and when they saw how pale she was, with the tears
streaming down her cheeks as she tried to smile upon them, they felt
that she “took it” as she should, and were satisfied.

There was a cheer or two more, and the people departed, leaving Fred and
Louie alone, as Mrs. Lansing and Miss Percy had gone with the judge and
Mrs. White.

“Oh, Fred, it was you all the time, and I was so stupid not to suspect
who our generous landlord was,” Louie said, going from room to room with
the eagerness of a happy child.

Nothing had been changed, and everything was in perfect order. “Spick
and span,” Nancy said, following her mistress at a respectful distance,
but not so far away that she could not see “kissin’ and huggin’ that
went on every minute or two,” she confided to the cook and housemaid,
who, having lived with the Greys before the failure, had been hired to
take their former places, and, not being preferred creditors, were not
supposed to take the same liberties as Nancy.

Every deep wound leaves a scar after it has ceased to ache, and Louie
had been hurt so sorely that there would always be a slight shadow on
her life when she thought of the past, but she was as near perfect
happiness now as she ever could be, and the happiness seemed to increase
as the summer day waned and the moonlit night came on.

They were sitting upon the piazza, and Fred’s arm was around her, while
he told how he had planned buying the house and keeping his name from
the public, because he thought she might feel more willing to accept the
favor from a stranger than from him.

“It was sometimes hard work to keep it from you when we were abroad, and
especially when I received the letter you wrote to your unknown friend,
and which came to me on the ship which brought you. In it you said, “if
there is one thing more than another which you desire, I hope God will
give it to you,” and he has given me _you_—my heart’s desire—and I am
more than repaid. I thought you would like your old home, and meant to
give it to you. We have another house in Washington, you know. My mother
and Miss Percy like it, and we will spend our winters there and our
summers here, if it pleases you.”

“Pleases me! Oh, Fred, everything pleases me, and I am so happy that I
can scarcely breathe,” Louie said, clutching at her throat as if for
breath.

The high collar choked her, and she tore it off.

“There!” she said, at last, with a long gasp, “something which closed up
in Paris has given way. I began to feel it when the people at the
station cheered so loud. I believe I can sing again.”

She did not wait for Fred to reply, but, standing up, began a song in
which she had failed in Paris, her voice rising louder and clearer, and
striking the higher notes without a quiver. Then a few bars of the bird
song rang out on the air, and was answered by the faint twitter of a
robin roused from its first sleep, and thinking, perhaps, that its mate
was calling it.

“My voice has come back. I might have sung on the stage and paid my
debts myself,” she cried, in an ecstasy of joy, while the moonlight fell
around her like a halo, making her face seem to Fred like the face of an
angel.

He watched her till her transport of joy subsided. Then, drawing her
down beside him, he said:

“Louie, which would you rather be, a star before the footlights or my
wife, plain Mrs. Fred Lansing?”

Just what Louie’s answer was only the night wind heard, or the robin, if
she was still awake; but Fred was satisfied.


                                THE END

------------------------------------------------------------------------




                             POPULAR NOVELS

                                   BY

                          MRS. MARY J. HOLMES.


                        TEMPEST AND SUNSHINE.
                        ENGLISH ORPHANS.
                        HOMESTEAD ON HILLSIDE.
                        ’LENA RIVERS.
                        MEADOW BROOK.
                        DORA DEANE.
                        COUSIN MAUDE.
                        MARIAN GREY.
                        EDITH LYLE.
                        DAISY THORNTON.
                        CHATEAU D’OR.
                        QUEENIE HETHERTON.
                        BESSIE’S FORTUNE.
                        MARGUERITE.
                        MRS. HALLAM’S COMPANION.
                        THE TRACY DIAMONDS.
                        DARKNESS AND DAYLIGHT.
                        HUGH WORTHINGTON.
                        CAMERON PRIDE.
                        ROSE MATHER.
                        ETHELYN’S MISTAKE.
                        MILBANK.
                        EDNA BROWNING.
                        WEST LAWN.
                        MILDRED.
                        FORREST HOUSE.
                        MADELINE.
                        CHRISTMAS STORIES.
                        GRETCHEN.
                        DR. HATHERN’S DAUGHTERS.
                        PAUL RALSTON.
                        THE CROMPTONS.
                        THE MERIVALE BANKS.


 “Mrs. Holmes is a peculiarly pleasant and fascinating writer. Her books
  are always entertaining and she has the rare faculty of enlisting the
 sympathy and affection of her readers, and of holding their attention to
               her pages with deep and absorbing interest.”

 Handsomely bound in cloth. Price, $1.00 each, and sent _free_ by mail on
                            receipt of price.

                     G. W. Dillingham Co., Publishers

                                NEW YORK.

------------------------------------------------------------------------




                          TRANSCRIBER’S NOTES


 Page           Changed from                      Changed to

  263 hard face. Mrs. White sent them  hard face. Mrs. White sent them
      a sure specific for              a cure specific for

 ● Typos fixed; non-standard spelling and dialect retained.
 ● Enclosed italics font in _underscores_.





*** END OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK THE MERIVALE BANKS ***


    

Updated editions will replace the previous one—the old editions will
be renamed.

Creating the works from print editions not protected by U.S. copyright
law means that no one owns a United States copyright in these works,
so the Foundation (and you!) can copy and distribute it in the United
States without permission and without paying copyright
royalties. Special rules, set forth in the General Terms of Use part
of this license, apply to copying and distributing Project
Gutenberg™ electronic works to protect the PROJECT GUTENBERG™
concept and trademark. Project Gutenberg is a registered trademark,
and may not be used if you charge for an eBook, except by following
the terms of the trademark license, including paying royalties for use
of the Project Gutenberg trademark. If you do not charge anything for
copies of this eBook, complying with the trademark license is very
easy. You may use this eBook for nearly any purpose such as creation
of derivative works, reports, performances and research. Project
Gutenberg eBooks may be modified and printed and given away—you may
do practically ANYTHING in the United States with eBooks not protected
by U.S. copyright law. Redistribution is subject to the trademark
license, especially commercial redistribution.


START: FULL LICENSE

THE FULL PROJECT GUTENBERG LICENSE

PLEASE READ THIS BEFORE YOU DISTRIBUTE OR USE THIS WORK

To protect the Project Gutenberg™ mission of promoting the free
distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work
(or any other work associated in any way with the phrase “Project
Gutenberg”), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full
Project Gutenberg™ License available with this file or online at
www.gutenberg.org/license.

Section 1. General Terms of Use and Redistributing Project Gutenberg™
electronic works

1.A. By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg™
electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to
and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property
(trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all
the terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or
destroy all copies of Project Gutenberg™ electronic works in your
possession. If you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a
Project Gutenberg™ electronic work and you do not agree to be bound
by the terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the person
or entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph 1.E.8.

1.B. “Project Gutenberg” is a registered trademark. It may only be
used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who
agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few
things that you can do with most Project Gutenberg™ electronic works
even without complying with the full terms of this agreement. See
paragraph 1.C below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project
Gutenberg™ electronic works if you follow the terms of this
agreement and help preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg™
electronic works. See paragraph 1.E below.

1.C. The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation (“the
Foundation” or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection
of Project Gutenberg™ electronic works. Nearly all the individual
works in the collection are in the public domain in the United
States. If an individual work is unprotected by copyright law in the
United States and you are located in the United States, we do not
claim a right to prevent you from copying, distributing, performing,
displaying or creating derivative works based on the work as long as
all references to Project Gutenberg are removed. Of course, we hope
that you will support the Project Gutenberg™ mission of promoting
free access to electronic works by freely sharing Project Gutenberg™
works in compliance with the terms of this agreement for keeping the
Project Gutenberg™ name associated with the work. You can easily
comply with the terms of this agreement by keeping this work in the
same format with its attached full Project Gutenberg™ License when
you share it without charge with others.

1.D. The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern
what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are
in a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States,
check the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this
agreement before downloading, copying, displaying, performing,
distributing or creating derivative works based on this work or any
other Project Gutenberg™ work. The Foundation makes no
representations concerning the copyright status of any work in any
country other than the United States.

1.E. Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg:

1.E.1. The following sentence, with active links to, or other
immediate access to, the full Project Gutenberg™ License must appear
prominently whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg™ work (any work
on which the phrase “Project Gutenberg” appears, or with which the
phrase “Project Gutenberg” is associated) is accessed, displayed,
performed, viewed, copied or distributed:

    This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and most
    other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no restrictions
    whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it under the terms
    of the Project Gutenberg License included with this eBook or online
    at www.gutenberg.org. If you
    are not located in the United States, you will have to check the laws
    of the country where you are located before using this eBook.
  
1.E.2. If an individual Project Gutenberg™ electronic work is
derived from texts not protected by U.S. copyright law (does not
contain a notice indicating that it is posted with permission of the
copyright holder), the work can be copied and distributed to anyone in
the United States without paying any fees or charges. If you are
redistributing or providing access to a work with the phrase “Project
Gutenberg” associated with or appearing on the work, you must comply
either with the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 or
obtain permission for the use of the work and the Project Gutenberg™
trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.

1.E.3. If an individual Project Gutenberg™ electronic work is posted
with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and distribution
must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and any
additional terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms
will be linked to the Project Gutenberg™ License for all works
posted with the permission of the copyright holder found at the
beginning of this work.

1.E.4. Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project Gutenberg™
License terms from this work, or any files containing a part of this
work or any other work associated with Project Gutenberg™.

1.E.5. Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute this
electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without
prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with
active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project
Gutenberg™ License.

1.E.6. You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary,
compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including
any word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access
to or distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg™ work in a format
other than “Plain Vanilla ASCII” or other format used in the official
version posted on the official Project Gutenberg™ website
(www.gutenberg.org), you must, at no additional cost, fee or expense
to the user, provide a copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a means
of obtaining a copy upon request, of the work in its original “Plain
Vanilla ASCII” or other form. Any alternate format must include the
full Project Gutenberg™ License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1.

1.E.7. Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying,
performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg™ works
unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.

1.E.8. You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing
access to or distributing Project Gutenberg™ electronic works
provided that:

    • You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from
        the use of Project Gutenberg™ works calculated using the method
        you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is owed
        to the owner of the Project Gutenberg™ trademark, but he has
        agreed to donate royalties under this paragraph to the Project
        Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments must be paid
        within 60 days following each date on which you prepare (or are
        legally required to prepare) your periodic tax returns. Royalty
        payments should be clearly marked as such and sent to the Project
        Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the address specified in
        Section 4, “Information about donations to the Project Gutenberg
        Literary Archive Foundation.”
    
    • You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies
        you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he
        does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg™
        License. You must require such a user to return or destroy all
        copies of the works possessed in a physical medium and discontinue
        all use of and all access to other copies of Project Gutenberg™
        works.
    
    • You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of
        any money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the
        electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days of
        receipt of the work.
    
    • You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free
        distribution of Project Gutenberg™ works.
    

1.E.9. If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project
Gutenberg™ electronic work or group of works on different terms than
are set forth in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing
from the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the manager of
the Project Gutenberg™ trademark. Contact the Foundation as set
forth in Section 3 below.

1.F.

1.F.1. Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable
effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread
works not protected by U.S. copyright law in creating the Project
Gutenberg™ collection. Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg™
electronic works, and the medium on which they may be stored, may
contain “Defects,” such as, but not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate
or corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other
intellectual property infringement, a defective or damaged disk or
other medium, a computer virus, or computer codes that damage or
cannot be read by your equipment.

1.F.2. LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the “Right
of Replacement or Refund” described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project
Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project
Gutenberg™ trademark, and any other party distributing a Project
Gutenberg™ electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all
liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal
fees. YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT
LIABILITY, BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE
PROVIDED IN PARAGRAPH 1.F.3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE
TRADEMARK OWNER, AND ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE
LIABLE TO YOU FOR ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR
INCIDENTAL DAMAGES EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH
DAMAGE.

1.F.3. LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a
defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can
receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a
written explanation to the person you received the work from. If you
received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium
with your written explanation. The person or entity that provided you
with the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in
lieu of a refund. If you received the work electronically, the person
or entity providing it to you may choose to give you a second
opportunity to receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If
the second copy is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing
without further opportunities to fix the problem.

1.F.4. Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth
in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you ‘AS-IS’, WITH NO
OTHER WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT
LIMITED TO WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTABILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE.

1.F.5. Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied
warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of
damages. If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement
violates the law of the state applicable to this agreement, the
agreement shall be interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or
limitation permitted by the applicable state law. The invalidity or
unenforceability of any provision of this agreement shall not void the
remaining provisions.

1.F.6. INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the
trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone
providing copies of Project Gutenberg™ electronic works in
accordance with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the
production, promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg™
electronic works, harmless from all liability, costs and expenses,
including legal fees, that arise directly or indirectly from any of
the following which you do or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this
or any Project Gutenberg™ work, (b) alteration, modification, or
additions or deletions to any Project Gutenberg™ work, and (c) any
Defect you cause.

Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg™

Project Gutenberg™ is synonymous with the free distribution of
electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of
computers including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It
exists because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations
from people in all walks of life.

Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the
assistance they need are critical to reaching Project Gutenberg™’s
goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg™ collection will
remain freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project
Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure
and permanent future for Project Gutenberg™ and future
generations. To learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary
Archive Foundation and how your efforts and donations can help, see
Sections 3 and 4 and the Foundation information page at www.gutenberg.org.

Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation

The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non-profit
501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the
state of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal
Revenue Service. The Foundation’s EIN or federal tax identification
number is 64-6221541. Contributions to the Project Gutenberg Literary
Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the full extent permitted by
U.S. federal laws and your state’s laws.

The Foundation’s business office is located at 809 North 1500 West,
Salt Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887. Email contact links and up
to date contact information can be found at the Foundation’s website
and official page at www.gutenberg.org/contact

Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg
Literary Archive Foundation

Project Gutenberg™ depends upon and cannot survive without widespread
public support and donations to carry out its mission of
increasing the number of public domain and licensed works that can be
freely distributed in machine-readable form accessible by the widest
array of equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations
($1 to $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt
status with the IRS.

The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating
charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United
States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a
considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up
with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations
where we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To SEND
DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any particular state
visit www.gutenberg.org/donate.

While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we
have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition
against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who
approach us with offers to donate.

International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make
any statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from
outside the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff.

Please check the Project Gutenberg web pages for current donation
methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other
ways including checks, online payments and credit card donations. To
donate, please visit: www.gutenberg.org/donate.

Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg™ electronic works

Professor Michael S. Hart was the originator of the Project
Gutenberg™ concept of a library of electronic works that could be
freely shared with anyone. For forty years, he produced and
distributed Project Gutenberg™ eBooks with only a loose network of
volunteer support.

Project Gutenberg™ eBooks are often created from several printed
editions, all of which are confirmed as not protected by copyright in
the U.S. unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not
necessarily keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper
edition.

Most people start at our website which has the main PG search
facility: www.gutenberg.org.

This website includes information about Project Gutenberg™,
including how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary
Archive Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to
subscribe to our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks.